Selected quad for the lemma: heaven_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heaven_n earth_n glory_n let_v 6,078 5 4.5887 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A34877 A supplement to Knowledge and practice wherein the main things necessary to be known and believed in order to salvation are more fully explained, and several new directions given for the promoting of real holiness both of heart and life : to which is added a serious disswasive from some of the reigning and customary sins of the times, viz. swearing, lying, pride, gluttony, drunkenness, uncleanness, discontent, covetousness and earthly-mindedness, anger and malice, idleness / by Samuel Cradock ... useful for the instruction of private families. Cradock, Samuel, 1621?-1706. 1679 (1679) Wing C6756; ESTC R15332 329,893 408

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v eph._n 3.14_o for_o th●s_n cause_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 1_o cor._n 8.6_o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o joh._n 17.5_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v joh._n 3.16_o for_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n joh._n 20.17_o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o touch_v i_o not_o for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n three_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o do_v prae-exist_a in_o the_o form_n or_o essence_n of_o god_n have_v all_o the_o property_n of_o the_o deity_n before_o his_o incarnation_n which_o be_v effect_v by_o voluntary_a act_n of_o his_o own_o which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o preexistence_n in_o another_o nature_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o divine_a testimony_n whereby_o this_o truth_n be_v confirm_v and_o establish_v psal_n 45.6_o thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o sceptre_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n be_v a_o right_a sceptre_n this_o be_v apply_v unto_o christ_n heb._n 1.8_o but_o unto_o the_o son_n he_o say_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o etc._n etc._n psal_n 102.25_o 26_o 27._o of_o old_a thou_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v yea_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v wax_v old_a like_o a_o garment_n as_o a_o vesture_n shall_v thou_o change_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o thy_o year_n shall_v have_v no_o end_n this_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n heb._n 1.10_o and_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n etc._n etc._n prov._n 8._o from_o the_o ●2_n to_o the_o 31._o the_o lord_n possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n before_o his_o work_n of_o old_a i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n or_o ever_o the_o earth_n be_v when_o there_o be_v no_o depth_n i_o be_v bring_v forth_o when_o there_o be_v no_o fountain_n abound_v with_o water_n before_o the_o mountain_n be_v settle_v before_o the_o hill_n be_v i_o bring_v forth_o generation_n forth_o he_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n joh._n 1.14_o angel_n and_o adam_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o creation_n the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o profession_n gen._n 6_o 1._o all_o true_a believer_n be_v his_o child_n by_o adoption_n joh._n 1.12_o but_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n by_o eternal_a generation_n whilst_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o make_v the_o earth_n nor_o the_o field_n nor_o the_o high_a part_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o world_n when_o he_o prepare_v the_o heaven_n i_o be_v there_o when_o he_o set_v a_o compass_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o depth_n when_o he_o establish_v the_o cloud_n above_o when_o he_o strengthen_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o deep_a when_o he_o give_v to_o the_o sea_n his_o decree_n that_o the_o water_n shall_v not_o pass_v his_o commandment_n when_o he_o appoint_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n then_o i_o be_v by_o he_o as_o one_o bring_v up_o with_o he_o and_o i_o be_v daily_o his_o delight_n rejoice_v always_o before_o he_o isai_n 9.6_o for_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v and_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n jer._n 23.5_o 6._o behold_v the_o day_n come_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v raise_v unto_o david_n a_o righteous_a branch_n and_o a_o king_n shall_v reign_v and_o prosper_v and_o shall_v execute_v judgement_n and_o justice_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o his_o day_n judah_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o israel_n shall_v dwell_v safe_o and_o this_o be_v his_o name_n whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n joh._n 1._o v._n 1._o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n v._o 2._o the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n v._o 3._o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v v._o 14._o and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n v._o 18._o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o joh._n 3.13_o and_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n act._n 20.28_o take_v heed_n therefore_o unto_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n rom._n 9.5_o who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n col._n 1.15_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first_o bear_v 49.3_o bear_v as_o be_v from_o all_o eternity_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n before_o any_o creature_n be_v make_v or_o create_v and_o so_o lord_n and_o heir_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n as_o the_o first-born_a be_v among_o his_o brethren_n gen._n 49.3_o of_o every_o creature_n v._o 16._o for_o by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o be_v in_o earth_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o v._o 17._o and_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v 1_o tim._n 3.16_o and_o without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n see_v of_o angel_n preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n receive_v up_o into_o glory_n 1_o joh._n 5.20_o and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o divine_a testimony_n that_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n the_o socinian_o indeed_o acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n but_o they_o say_v he_o be_v not_o so_o by_o nature_n but_o by_o office_n they_o say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o most_o high_a eternal_a god_n this_o therefore_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o prove_v by_o several_a argument_n first_o he_o have_v a_o personal_a preexistence_n unto_o the_o whole_a creation_n and_o nothing_o can_v prae-exist_a gloss_n prae-exist_a quod_fw-la ante_fw-la omnem_fw-la creaturam_fw-la suisse_fw-la dicitur_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la aeterrum_fw-la est_fw-la gloss_n to_o all_o creature_n but_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n which_o be_v eternal_a in_o the_o beginning_n the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o so_o continue_v unto_o eternity_n joh._n 1._o ●●_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n yet_o he_o be_v so_o god_n that_o he_o be_v distinct_a in_o something_o from_o god_n the_o father_n by_o who_o afterward_o he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o so_o distinct_a from_o he_o and_o be_v god_n and_o so_o one_o with_o he_o and_o he_o be_v so_o from_o the_o beginning_n before_o the_o creation_n that_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n even_o the_o world_n viz._n all_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v our_o saviour_n own_o word_n joh._n 17.5_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o the_o glory_n i_o have_v
with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v second_o let_v we_o consider_v this_o all_z the_o way_n whereby_o we_o can_v come_v to_o know_v god_n be_v either_o by_o his_o name_n or_o his_o property_n or_o his_o work_n or_o the_o divine_a worship_n give_v unto_o he_o now_o all_o these_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n he_o therefore_o be_v god_n or_o we_o can_v tell_v either_o who_o or_o what_o god_n be_v and_o first_o the_o proper_a name_n of_o god_n viz._n jehovah_n be_v give_v to_o he_o jer._n 23.6_o this_o be_v his_o name_n whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n and_o rom._n 9.5_o he_o be_v call_v the_o most_o high_a god_n who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o evermore_o god_n evermore_o a_o title_n peculiar_a to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n second_o divine_a property_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o and_o such_o divine_a excellency_n as_o natural_o and_o necessary_o appertain_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n particular_o these_o four_o first_o eternity_n joh._n 1.1_o 2._o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n grot._n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sic_fw-la mos_fw-la hebraeis_n aeternitatem_fw-la populariter_fw-la exprimare_fw-la grot._n in_o the_o beginning_n when_o the_o world_n begin_v to_o be_v create_v then_o be_v he._n and_o so_o prov._n 8.23_o 24._o i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n or_o ever_o the_o earth_n be_v when_o there_o be_v no_o depth_n i_o be_v bring_v forth_o the_o essential_a wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n be_v from_o everlasting_a col._n 1.17_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n viz._n all_o thing_n create_v and_o revel_v 1.8_o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n say_v the_o lord_n which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o almighty_a that_o this_o place_n be_v mean_v of_o christ_n may_v appear_v by_o compare_v with_o it_o chap._n 2.6_o &_o 22.13_o of_o this_o book_n second_o omnipresence_n mat._n 18.20_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v meet_v together_o in_o my_o name_n say_v our_o saviour_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o viz._n by_o my_o eternal_a spirit_n joh._n 3.13_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o mat._n 28.20_o and_o so_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n three_o omnipotency_n philip._n 3.8_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_v to_o his_o own_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o mighty_a work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o joh._n 1.3_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v heb._n 1.10_o and_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n four_o omniscience_n joh._n 21.17_o lord_n thou_o know_v all_o thing_n say_v peter_n and_o joh._n 2.25_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o need_v not_o that_o any_o shall_v testify_v of_o man_n for_o he_o know_v what_o be_v in_o man_n dei._n man_n de_fw-fr animus_fw-la hominum_fw-la certo_fw-la judicare_fw-la solius_fw-la est_fw-la dei._n three_o divine_a action_n or_o work_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o as_o 1._o creation_n joh._n 1.3_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o so_o that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v unto_o christ_n a_o preexistence_n in_o his_o divine_a nature_n antecedent_n to_o his_o incarnation_n 2._o providence_n heb._n 1.3_o he_o uphold_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n and_o col._n 1.17_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v he_o be_v not_o only_o before_o all_o creature_n and_o their_o creator_n but_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n their_o up-holder_n powerful_a preserver_n and_o governor_n four_o divine_a worship_n be_v give_v to_o he_o heb._n 1.6_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o the_o angel_n themselves_o refuse_v divine_a worship_n rev._n 19.10_o see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o say_v the_o angel_n there_o that_o be_v see_v thou_o do_v not_o worship_v i_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n creature_n joh._n 14.1_o you_o believe_v in_o god_n say_v our_o saviour_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o now_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o and_o rest_v on_o be_v a_o honour_n or_o homage_n peculiar_a unto_o god_n alone_o indeed_o the_o socinian_o say_v that_o though_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o most_o high_a god_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o divine_a and_o religious_a worship_n but_o sure_o they_o do_v not_o well_o consider_v that_o only_o divine_a and_o essential_a excellency_n be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o divine_a and_o religious_a worship_n and_o to_o give_v such_o a_o worship_n to_o one_o that_o be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n be_v plain_a idolatry_n where_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v there_o be_v the_o true_a proper_a formal_a object_n of_o religious_a worship_n and_o where_o that_o be_v not_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o or_o exercise_v it_o towards_o any_o other_o so_o that_o if_o the_o word_n and_o testimony_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o decide_v a_o difference_n among_o the_o child_n of_o man_n i_o see_v not_o but_o that_o the_o testimony_n give_v to_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n be_v as_o clear_v and_o unquestionable_a as_o those_o which_o be_v give_v concern_v the_o deity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o thus_o we_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o three_o thing_n viz._n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n four_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o by_o divine_a revelation_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n this_o will_v plain_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v what_o be_v reveal_v to_o we_o concern_v the_o divine_a existence_n the_o divine_a excellency_n and_o the_o divine_a operation_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n such_o thing_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o do_v uncontrolable_o evidence_n he_o to_o be_v a_o voluntary_a divine_a agent_n a_o eternal_a divine_a exi_a substance_n a_o person_n or_o intelligent_a subsistence_n the_o author_n of_o divine_a operation_n and_o the_o object_n of_o divine_a and_o religious_a worship_n there_o be_v some_o that_o hold_v he_o be_v a_o mere_a emanation_n of_o virtue_n or_o power_n from_o god_n and_o not_o a_o person_n other_o grant_v indeed_o his_o personality_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o distinct_a self-subsisting_a person_n but_o deny_v his_o deity_n they_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o participant_a of_o the_o divine_a nature_n a_o create_v finite_a spirit_n they_o will_v allow_v he_o to_o be_v and_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o spirit_n that_o be_v create_v and_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o good_a angel_n but_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v he_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a person_n we_o shall_v therefore_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v from_o plain_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a emanation_n of_o virtue_n or_o power_n from_o god_n but_o a_o intelligent_a subsistence_n or_o person_n 2._o a_o divine_a person_n 3._o a_o person_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 4._o a_o person_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n first_o it_o will_v appear_v he_o be_v a_o person_n because_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o personal_a property_n and_o personal_a action_n such_o as_o be_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o a_o person_n be_v attribute_v to_o he_o as_o namely_o 1._o to_o make_v intercession_n rom._n 8.26_o the_o spirit_n also_o help_v our_o infirmity_n for_o we_o know_v not_o how_o to_o pray_v as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n make_v intercession_n for_o we_o v._o 27._o and_o he_o that_o search_v the_o heart_n know_v what_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 2._o to_o come_v to_o man_n be_v send_v to_o they_o job_n 15.26_o but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o 3._o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o he_o i_o that_o be_v communicate_v nothing_o to_o they_o b●●_n what_o t●●y_v r●c●iv_v d_o from_o he_o and_o show_v it_o unto_o you_o joh._n 16.14_o which_o be_v a_o personal_a action_n 4._o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o against_o who_o a_o sin_n may_v be_v commit_v and_o therefore_o sure_o he_o be_v a_o person_n matth._n 12.31_o wherefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o
of_o good_a angel_n and_o then_o of_o the_o angel_n that_o fall_v there_o be_v four_o thing_n the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o to_o we_o concern_v good_a angel_n 1._o their_o number_n 2._o their_o title_n 3._o their_o nature_n and_o property_n 4._o their_o function_n and_o ministry_n first_o their_o number_n the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o be_v very_o many_o dan._n 7.10_o a_o fiery_a stream_n issue_v and_o come_v forth_o from_o before_o he_o thousand_o thousand_o minister_v unto_o he_o and_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o stand_v before_o he_o the_o judgement_n be_v set_v and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v rev._n 5_o 11._o and_o i_o behold_v and_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o many_o angel_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o and_o thousand_o of_o thousand_o matth._n 26.53_o think_v thou_o that_o i_o can_v now_o pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v present_o send_v i_o more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n heb._n 12.22_o but_o you_o be_v now_o come_v unto_o mount_n zion_n and_o unto_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o to_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n psal_n 68.17_o the_o chariot_n of_o god_n be_v twenty_o thousand_o even_o thousand_o of_o angel_n 2_o king_n 6.17_o and_o elisha_n pray_v and_o the_o lord_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o young_a man_n and_o he_o see_v the_o mountain_n be_v full_a of_o horse_n and_o chariot_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o elisha_n that_o be_v that_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o angel_n be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o defend_v and_o protect_v the_o prophet_n second_o their_o title_n their_o general_a name_n be_v angel_n or_o messenger_n sometime_o they_o be_v call_v cherubin_n and_o when_o they_o appear_v in_o a_o visible_a shape_n or_o be_v picture_v they_o have_v the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o young_a man_n in_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o beauty_n vigour_n and_o strength_n and_o have_v wing_n as_o we_o read_v exod._n 25.18_o 20._o sometime_o they_o be_v call_v seraphim_n import_v their_o fervent_a zeal_n in_o execute_v the_o will_n of_o god_n sometime_o son_n of_o god_n job_n 38.7_o when_o the_o morning_n star_n sing_v together_o and_o all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shout_v for_o joy_n sometime_o throne_n dominion_n principality_n power_n as_o we_o read_v col._n 1.16_o and_o so_o much_o of_o their_o title_n three_o their_o nature_n and_o property_n 1._o they_o be_v spirit_n of_o great_a knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n it_o be_v say_v of_o david_n 2_o sam._n 14.20_o that_o he_o be_v wise_a according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n they_o be_v admirable_a in_o knowledge_n both_o natural_a experimental_a and_o reveal_v 2._o of_o spotless_a purity_n and_o integrity_n our_o saviour_n say_v mark_n 8.38_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a ●f_n i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n in_o the_o adulterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n of_o he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n when_o they_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n their_o garb_n wherein_o they_o appear_v represent_v their_o innocency_n as_o at_o christ_n sepulchre_n there_o appear_v two_o angel_n in_o white_a the_o one_o sit_v at_o the_o head_n the_o other_o at_o the_o foot_n where_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n have_v lie_v joh._n 20.12_o 3._o of_o exceed_v great_a power_n and_o strength_n psal_n 103.20_o bless_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o angel_n that_o excel_v in_o strength_n 4._o of_o great_a celerity_n and_o quickness_n of_o motion_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v wing_n isai_n 6.2_o above_o it_o stand_v the_o seraphim_n each_o one_o have_v six_o wing_n import_v their_o cheerfulness_n and_o readiness_n and_o celerity_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n four_o their_o function_n and_o ministry_n which_o be_v of_o three_o sort_n 1._o in_o reference_n to_o god_n 2._o in_o reference_n to_o christ_n 3._o to_o the_o saint_n and_o people_n of_o god_n i_o in_o reference_n to_o god_n 1._o they_o attend_v his_o glorious_a presence_n they_o be_v his_o chief_a servant_n and_o principal_a attendant_n the_o bright_a courtier_n of_o heaven_n they_o be_v call_v the_o host_n of_o heaven_n 1_o king_n 22.19_o they_o be_v call_v the_o chariot_n of_o god_n viz._n such_o as_o attend_v he_o for_o his_o service_n psal_n 68.17_o the_o chariot_n of_o god_n be_v twenty_o thousand_o even_o thousand_o of_o angel_n 2._o they_o be_v especial_a instrument_n to_o praise_n and_o magnify_v he_o rev._n 7.11_o 12._o and_o all_o the_o angel_n stoood_a round_n about_o the_o throne_n and_o fall_v before_o the_o throne_n on_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n say_v blessing_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o may_v be_v unto_o our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n 3._o they_o be_v messenger_n to_o carry_v and_o reveal_v his_o mind_n and_o will_n by_o the_o glorious_a ministry_n and_o proclamation_n of_o angel_n god_n deliver_v his_o law_n on_o mount_n sinai_n act._n 7.53_o compare_v with_o gal._n 3.19_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o angel_n proclaim_v his_o law_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n as_o a_o herald_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n publish_v his_o proclamation_n and_o so_o on_o sundry_a other_o occasion_n god_n use_v to_o make_v know_v his_o will_n by_o angel_n dan._n 9.21_o while_o i_o be_v speak_v in_o prayer_n say_v daniel_n the_o man_n gabriel_n who_o i_o have_v see_v in_o the_o vision_n at_o the_o beginning_n be_v cause_v to_o fly_v swift_o touch_v i_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o evening_n oblation_n and_o luk._n 1.11_o there_o appear_v unto_o zacharias_n a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o be_o gabriel_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o be_o send_v to_o speak_v unto_o thou_o and_o to_o show_v thou_o these_o glad_a tiding_n and_o v._o 26._o in_o the_o six_o month_n the_o angel_n gabriel_n be_v send_v from_o god_n unto_o a_o city_n of_o galilee_n name_n nazareth_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o luke_n 2.9_o 10._o a_o angel_n be_v send_v to_o the_o shepherd_n keep_v watch_n over_o their_o flock_n by_o night_n to_o bring_v the_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o messiah_n 4._o they_o be_v minister_n to_o execute_v and_o perform_v what_o god_n will_v have_v do_v in_o the_o world_n psal_n 103.20_o bless_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o angel_n that_o excel_v in_o strength_n that_o do_v his_o commandment_n they_o bring_v lot_n out_o of_o sodom_n gen._n 19.1_o they_o bring_v israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n numb_a 20.16_o they_o stop_v balaams_n course_n numb_a 22.22_o they_o stop_v the_o lion_n mouth_n dan._n 6.20_o 22._o they_o execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o wicked_a man_n thus_o we_o read_v how_o two_o angel_n destroy_v sodom_n and_o that_o a_o angel_n defeat_v the_o host_n of_o sennacherib_n 2_o king_n 19.35_o and_o that_o a_o angel_n smite_v bloody_a persecute_v herod_n act_v 12.33_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o their_o ministry_n in_o reference_n to_o god_n i_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v ii_o their_o ministry_n in_o reference_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v say_v joh._n 1.51_o that_o the_o angel_n ascend_v and_o descend_v on_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o place_n have_v relation_n to_o gen._n 28.12_o where_o jacob_n dream_v of_o a_o ladder_n set_v upon_o the_o earth_n who_o to_o preach_v to_o heaven_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n ascend_v and_o descend_v on_o it_o by_o the_o ladder_n christ_n be_v mean_v who_o by_o his_o humane_a nature_n touch_v the_o earth_n and_o who_o divine_a nature_n reach_v up_o to_o heaven_n the_o angel_n ascend_v and_o descend_v import_v the_o continual_a service_n they_o be_v re●dy_a to_o perform_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o they_o be_v depute_v thereunto_o of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o apostle_n prove_v heb._n 1.6_o when_o he_o bring_v his_o first_o beget_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o but_o to_o descend_v to_o particular_n 1._o they_o foretell_v his_o conception_n luke_n 1.30_o 3●_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o she_o fear_v not_o marry_v for_o thou_o have_v find_v favour_n with_o god_n and_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n 2._o they_o declare_v his_o birth_n luke_n 2.9_o 10_o 11._o and_o lo_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n shine_v round_o about_o they_o and_o they_o be_v sore_o afraid_a and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n
so_o do_v you_o upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n let_v every_o one_o of_o you_o lay_v by_o he_o in_o store_n as_o god_n have_v prosper_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o gather_n when_o i_o come_v he_o ordain_v that_o their_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a saint_n and_o oblation_n shall_v be_v on_o that_o day_n and_o st._n john_n say_v rev._n 1.10_o i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n thus_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o week_n which_o the_o jew_n keep_v do_v cease_v and_o be_v bury_v with_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o observation_n of_o that_o day_n on_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n rose_n by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n be_v transmit_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o so_o have_v continue_v in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o as_o god_n speak_v by_o moses_n to_o the_o israelite_n exodus_fw-la 31.13_o very_o my_o sabbath_n you_o shall_v keep_v for_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n between_o i_o and_o you_o viz._n that_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o to_o be_v my_o people_n in_o a_o especial_a manner_n so_o they_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v by_o observe_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n on_o which_o he_o arise_v and_o by_o this_o mark_n among_o other_o be_v distinguish_v from_o such_o who_o own_v not_o christ_n nor_o his_o gospel_n 6._o and_o last_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o end_n for_o which_o christ_n arise_v and_o those_o be_v such_o as_o these_o 1._o for_o our_o justification_n rom._n 4.25_o he_o be_v deliver_v for_o our_o offence_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n 2._o to_o assure_v we_o of_o our_o resurrection_n if_o christ_n body_n have_v not_o be_v raise_v how_o can_v we_o have_v expect_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o member_n depend_v upon_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o head_n 2_o cor._n 4.14_o 3._o that_o he_o may_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n rom._n 1.4_o by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a therefore_o say_v the_o apostle_n act_v 13.32.33_o we_o declare_v unto_o you_o glad_a tiding_n how_o that_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o father_n god_n have_v fulfil_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o their_o child_n in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o jesus_n again_o as_o it_o be_v also_o write_v in_o the_o second_o psalm_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o but_o then_o he_o appear_v so_o to_o be_v against_o all_o contradiction_n for_o he_o arise_v by_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n which_o no_o mere_a man_n ever_o do_v or_o shall_v do_v 4._o he_o rise_v again_o to_o encourage_v we_o firm_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o a_o most_o perfect_a redeemer_n our_o surety_n be_v release_v and_o set_v free_a therefore_o god_n justice_n be_v satisfy_v and_o so_o we_o be_v beget_v unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a 1_o pet._n 1.3_o 5._o by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v show_v we_o how_o we_o ought_v to_o imitate_v he_o and_o to_o rise_v from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n this_o the_o apostle_n intimate_v to_o we_o rom._n 6.4_o therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o like_a as_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n even_o so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n let_v we_o consider_v therefore_o and_o serious_o examine_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n or_o no_o be_v our_o affection_n set_v on_o thing_n above_o act_n 3.2_o do_v we_o delight_v in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n they_o that_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n will_v delight_v in_o that_o food_n whereby_o that_o spiritual_a life_n be_v maintain_v do_v we_o delight_v in_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o frequent_a meditation_n and_o the_o believe_a view_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o other_o life_n those_o who_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n seek_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o sect_n viii_o of_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n and_o sit_v on_o god_n right_a hand_n heaven_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v these_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n in_o treat_v of_o this_o article_n i_o shall_v first_o show_v that_o the_o promise_v messiah_n be_v to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n 2._o that_o our_o jesus_n do_v real_o and_o true_o ascend_v thither_o 3._o i_o shall_v show_v what_o heaven_n it_o be_v he_o ascend_v into_o 4._o the_o reason_n of_o his_o ascension_n 5._o the_o time_n when_o he_o ascend_v 6._o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o ascend_v i_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o namely_o that_o the_o promise_v messiah_n be_v to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n this_o be_v typify_v of_o he_o by_o the_o high_a priest_n go_v once_o a_o year_n into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n heb._n 9.11_o which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o heaven_n the_o high_a priest_n when_o he_o have_v slay_v the_o sacrifice_n do_v with_o the_o blood_n thereof_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n so_o the_o messiah_n have_v offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n go_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n viz._n into_o heaven_n there_o to_o intercede_v for_o we_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o merit_n of_o that_o blood_n and_o as_o this_o be_v typify_v so_o it_o be_v also_o prophesy_v of_o the_o messiah_n psal_n 68.18_o compare_v with_o ephesian_n 4.8_o thou_o have_v ascend_v up_o on_o high_a thou_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a thou_o have_v receive_v gift_n for_o man_n he_o be_v to_o conquer_v sin_n and_o death_n and_o hell_n and_o triumph_v over_o they_o he_o be_v to_o ascend_v to_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o thence_o to_o send_v the_o precious_a and_o glorious_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o men._n and_o according_o he_o himself_o do_v foretell_v his_o ascension_n john_n 6.62_o and_o john_n 20.17_o 2._o this_o be_v not_o only_o foretell_v of_o the_o messiah_n but_o real_o perform_v by_o he_o he_o who_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o divinity_n present_a in_o heaven_n while_o here_o upon_o the_o earth_n do_v by_o local_a translation_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n real_o and_o true_o ascend_v from_o this_o earth_n below_o into_o the_o heaven_n above_o as_o be_v sufficient_o testify_v by_o these_o follow_a scripture_n mark_v 16.19_o luke_n 24.50_o 51._o act_n 1.9_o 10._o christ_n ascension_n be_v visible_o perform_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o apostle_n they_o see_v he_o when_o he_o ascend_v the_o holy_a angel_n there_o present_a bear_v also_o testimony_n unto_o it_o act_n 1.10_o 11._o 3._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o place_n he_o ascend_v unto_o which_o be_v the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n he_o pass_v through_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o air_n through_o all_o the_o celestial_a orb_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n the_o most_o glorious_a presence_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n he_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o visible_a heaven_n to_o the_o three_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 12.2_o that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n prophesy_v of_o he_o 4._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o ascend_v 1._o have_v finish_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n it_o be_v meet_v he_o shall_v return_v thither_o from_o whence_o he_o come_v john_n 16.28_o john_n 17.4_o 5._o 2._o after_o his_o humiliation_n his_o exaltation_n be_v to_o follow_v the_o first_o step_n of_o which_o be_v his_o resurrection_n and_o his_o ascension_n another_o step_n of_o it_o 3._o christ_n by_o his_o ascension_n manifest_v his_o victory_n over_o sin_n satan_n and_o death_n 4._o he_o ascend_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o rom._n 8.34_o 1_o joh._n 2.1_o heb._n 9.24_o 5._o that_o he_o may_v send_v down_o a_o more_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o according_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n john_n 16.7_o nevertheless_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v away_o for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o john_n 7.38_o 39_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o as_o the_o scripture_n have_v say_v out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n of_o live_a water_n but_o this_o speak_v he_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v receive_v for_o the_o holy-ghost_n be_v not_o yet_o
than_o every_o branch_n of_o the_o execution_n shall_v cease_v 1_o cor._n 15.24_o 28._o then_o come_v the_o end_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v put_v down_o all_o rule_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n and_o when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v unto_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himsef_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o but_o though_o the_o mediatorship_n of_o christ_n be_v then_o resign_v and_o the_o regal_a office_n as_o a_o part_n of_o that_o mediatorship_n yet_o christ_n shall_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v king_n or_o loose_a any_o thing_n of_o that_o power_n and_o honour_n he_o have_v before_o but_o as_o the_o nicene_n creed_n have_v it_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v have_v no_o end_n 4._o let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o this_o article_n 1._o if_o christ_n be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n let_v this_o mind_n we_o of_o our_o duty_n which_o be_v humble_a subjection_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o 2._o let_v we_o encourage_v ourselves_o if_o we_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o expect_v protection_n from_o he_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o his_o church_n and_o all_o power_n be_v give_v he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 3._o let_v we_o remember_v his_o intercession_n heb._n 9.24_o for_o christ_n be_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n make_v with_o hand_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o true_a but_o into_o heaven_n itself_o now_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o we_o 1_o john_n 2.1_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a heb._n 7.25_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a all_o that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o see_v he_o ever_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o do_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n sting_n and_o wound_v our_o conscience_n let_v we_o remember_v what_o a_o advocate_n we_o have_v be_v we_o in_o want_n of_o any_o mercy_n let_v we_o remember_v what_o our_o saviour_n himself_o say_v john_n 16_o 23._o whatsoever_o you_o ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o you_o whatever_o trouble_n we_o be_v in_o let_v we_o not_o be_v dismay_v consider_v christ_n be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n heb._n 12.2_o 4._o let_v all_o those_o that_o oppose_v christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n think_v serious_o of_o this_o his_o enemy_n must_v be_v make_v his_o footstool_n sect_n ix_o of_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o judge_n the_o world_n the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v these_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a dead_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a concern_v this_o article_n we_o shall_v make_v these_o inquiry_n 1._o how_o may_v we_o be_v assure_v there_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n 2._o who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n at_o that_o great_a day_n 3._o what_o will_v be_v the_o nature_n and_o manner_n of_o that_o judgement_n 4._o what_o will_v be_v the_o consequent_n of_o it_o 1._o how_o may_v we_o be_v assure_v there_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o to_o we_o a_o twofold_a judgement_n to_o come_v 1._o particular_a judgement_n which_o follow_v immediate_o upon_o every_o one_o death_n eccles_n 12.7_o then_o shall_v the_o dust_n return_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v unto_o god_n who_o give_v it_o this_o be_v also_o hold_v forth_o by_o that_o historical_a parable_n of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n luke_n 16.22_o 23._o and_o heb._n 9.27_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o this_o to_o judgement_n loc_n judgement_n unum_n sci●icet_fw-la nam_fw-la ultimum_fw-la judicium_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la erit_fw-la quam_fw-la promulgatio_fw-la solennis_fw-la &_o totalis_fw-la executio_fw-la sententiae_fw-la semel_fw-la in_o singulos_fw-la cum_fw-la moriuntur_fw-la latae_fw-la jac._n capellus_n in_o loc_n 2._o a_o general_n judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o certainty_n of_o which_o may_v appear_v to_o we_o from_o these_o argument_n 1._o from_o the_o sense_n that_o even_o natural_a conscience_n seem_v to_o have_v of_o it_o act_n 24.25_o and_o as_o he_o reason_v of_o righteousness_n temperance_n and_o judgement_n to_o come_v foelix_fw-la tremble_v 2._o from_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o require_v it_o here_o barrabas_n a_o murderer_n be_v release_v and_o christ_n be_v crucify_a here_o judgement_n be_v often_o pervert_v and_o the_o righteous_a oppress_v but_o there_o be_v a_o judgement_n to_o come_v that_o will_v set_v all_o thing_n straight_o 3._o from_o the_o clear_a and_o manifest_a declaration_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o eccles_n 12.14_o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o act_n 17.31_o he_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n in_o the_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n by_o that_o man_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v whereof_o he_o have_v give_v assurance_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a 4._o from_o the_o representation_n make_v of_o it_o to_o some_o of_o god_n servant_n in_o divine_a vision_n as_o 1._o to_o daniel_n dan._n 7.9_o 10._o i_o behold_v till_o the_o ancient_n of_o day_n do_v sit_v who_o garment_n be_v white_a as_o snow_n thousand_o thousand_o minister_v unto_o he_o and_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o stand_v before_o he_o the_o judgement_n be_v set_v and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v and_o 2._o to_o st._n john_n rev._n 20.12_o i_o see_v the_o dead_a small_a and_o great_a stand_n before_o god_n and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v and_o another_o book_n be_v open_v which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n 2._o let_v we_o inquire_v who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o that_o this_o jesus_n christ_n will_v be_v the_o judge_n act_v 10.42_o he_o have_v command_v we_o to_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a john_n 5.22_o 27._o for_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n that_o be_v immediate_o by_o himself_o but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o the_o son_n and_o have_v give_v he_o authority_n to_o execute_v judgement_n also_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n now_o christ_n be_v appoint_v the_o judge_n 1._o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o man_n the_o authority_n of_o judge_v be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o person_n but_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o power_n be_v proper_a only_o to_o the_o son_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy-ghost_n will_v judge_v the_o world_n by_o he_o who_o suffer_v so_o much_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o this_o as_o a_o reward_n of_o his_o humiliation_n 2._o because_o god_n intend_v to_o make_v a_o general_a and_o visible_a judgement_n will_v have_v a_o visible_a judge_n rev._n 1.7_o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o that_o the_o judicial_a proceed_n may_v be_v in_o a_o outward_a and_o visible_a manner_n christ_n indeed_o come_v not_o at_o first_o as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o redeemer_n john_n 3.17_o but_o his_o second_o come_n will_v be_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n 2_o tim._n 4.1_o 3._o let_v we_o inquire_v what_o will_v be_v the_o nature_n and_o manner_n of_o this_o judgement_n and_o here_o 1._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o preparation_n to_o it_o scripture_n set_v forth_o this_o by_o the_o arch-angel_n trumpet_n by_o which_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v summon_v to_o appear_v at_o god_n tribunal_n 1_o thes_n 4.16_o 2._o for_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o the_o scripture_n represent_v it_o to_o we_o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o judiciary_n process_n wherein_o 1._o the_o judge_n himself_o will_v appear_v exceed_o glorious_a he_o will_v come_v with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n even_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n mat._n 16.27_o and_o when_o this_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v than_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v glad_a with_o exceed_v joy_n 1_o pet._n 4.13_o 2._o his_o attendance_n will_v be_v very_o glorious_a mat._n 25.31_o the_o son_n o●_n man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o ●lory_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a
man_n may_v acknowledge_v and_o own_v he_o for_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o may_v glorify_v he_o according_o 2._o thy_n kingdom_n come_v that_o be_v that_o his_o kingly_a power_n may_v be_v more_o and_o more_o manifest_v in_o the_o kerbing_a and_o subdue_a of_o satan_n and_o all_o his_o enemy_n that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v advance_v and_o promote_v by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n may_v be_v hasten_v rev._n 22.20_o that_o the_o happiness_n of_o his_o people_n may_v be_v full_a and_o that_o christ_n may_v resign_v up_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o administer_v as_o mediator_n to_o his_o father_n and_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o 3._o thy_n will_v be_v do_v on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v that_o we_o and_o all_o his_o people_n on_o earth_n may_v sincere_o cheerful_o and_o constant_o do_v and_o submit_v to_o his_o holy_a will_n as_o angel_n and_o glorify_a saint_n do_v in_o heaven_n 4._o give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily-bread_n wherein_o we_o acknowledge_v god_n the_o author_n and_o giver_n of_o all_o our_o mercy_n and_o that_o we_o receive_v all_o from_o his_o free_a bounty_n that_o we_o ought_v daily_o to_o depend_v on_o his_o fatherly_a care_n and_o providence_n and_o not_o to_o be_v over_o anxious_a and_o solicitous_a for_o to_o morrow_n neither_o inordinate_o to_o desire_v superfluity_n but_o to_o crave_v and_o pray_v for_o such_o necessary_a and_o convenient_a thing_n as_o be_v daily_o needful_a and_o requisite_a for_o the_o sustentation_n and_o comfort_n of_o our_o bodily_a life_n and_o that_o what_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o give_v we_o may_v be_v by_o he_o bless_v to_o we_o 5._o and_n forgive_v we_o our_o debt_n as_o we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n wherein_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v debt_n bind_v we_o over_o to_o punishment_n and_o that_o ourselves_o can_v satisfy_v for_o they_o we_o pray_v that_o in_o christ_n these_o debt_n may_v be_v free_o and_o full_o forgive_v and_o pardon_v we_o profess_v we_o ought_v and_o do_v through_o his_o grace_n assist_v we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v do_v wrong_a to_o we_o and_o thereby_o not_o only_o make_v themselves_o debtor_n to_o god_n but_o unto_o we_o that_o we_o do_v full_o and_o free_o forgive_v their_o wrong_n and_o injury_n do_v unto_o we_o though_o we_o be_v not_o always_o bind_v to_o forgive_v the_o damage_n see_v exod._n 22.1_o 14._o and_o from_o thence_o we_o gather_v a_o argument_n to_o confirm_v our_o hope_n and_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o god_n will_v forgive_v we_o 6._o and_n lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a wherein_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o proneness_n to_o evil_n and_o weakness_n to_o withstand_v temptation_n that_o god_n have_v power_n over_o all_o corruption_n tempter_n and_o temptation_n we_o pray_v to_o be_v preserve_v from_o temptation_n to_o sin_n or_o from_o be_v overcome_v by_o they_o and_o at_o last_o to_o be_v whole_o deliver_v from_o they_o all_o 3._o the_o conclusion_n for_o thy_o be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n wherein_o we_o have_v 1._o the_o doxology_n acknowledge_v and_o ascribe_v to_o god_n the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n and_o encourage_v ourselves_o from_o thence_o to_o expect_v from_o he_o what_o we_o have_v pray_v for_o 2._o the_o seal_v up_o the_o prayer_n with_o amen_o wherein_o we_o summary_o testify_v our_o fervent_a desire_n of_o obtain_v these_o our_o petition_n and_o our_o faith_n in_o god_n for_o the_o grant_n of_o they_o the_o second_o part_n contain_v a_o serious_a dissuasive_a from_o the_o reign_v and_o customary_a sin_n of_o these_o time_n viz._n swear_v lie_v pride_n gluttony_n drunkenness_n uncleanness_n discontent_n covetousness_n malice_n idleness_n chap._n i._o of_o swear_v that_o i_o may_v proceed_v methodical_o and_o clear_o in_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n i_o shall_v confine_v my_o discourse_n to_o these_o seven_o head_n 1._o i_o shall_v show_v what_o a_o oath_n be_v 2._o shall_v show_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o take_v a_o oath_n when_o due_o call_v thereunto_o 3._o shall_v answer_v the_o objection_n usual_o frame_v from_o matth._n 5._o 33._o etc._n etc._n and_o jam._n 5.12_o against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o any_o swear_n at_o all_o 4._o shall_v show_v in_o what_o manner_n a_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v take_v 5._o show_v the_o great_a sinfulness_n of_o rash_a customary_a and_o unnecessary_a swear_n 6._o shall_v answer_v the_o vain_a pretence_n and_o excuse_n that_o customary_a swearer_n use_v to_o make_v for_o themselves_o 7._o shall_v give_v some_o direction_n and_o mean_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o this_o sin_n 1._o i_o shall_v show_v what_o a_o oath_n be_v perkins_n in_o his_o case_n of_o conscience_n lib._n 2._o chap._n 13._o say_v a_o oath_n be_v a_o religious_a and_o necessary_a confirmation_n of_o a_o thing_n doubtful_a by_o call_v god_n to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o revenger_n of_o falsehood_n doctor_n saunderson_n in_o his_o first_o lecture_n of_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n §_o 2._o say_v a_o oath_n be_v a_o religious_a act_n in_o which_o to_o confirm_v a_o thing_n doubtful_a god_n be_v call_v upon_o as_o a_o witness_n other_o from_o numb_a 30.2_o define_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacred_a bond_n by_o which_o a_o man_n bind_v his_o soul_n to_o the_o speak_n of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o true_a or_o to_o the_o do_v of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o lawful_a unto_o which_o the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n be_v vindicis_fw-la be_v juramentum_fw-la est_fw-la contestatio_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o re_fw-la gravi_fw-la tanquam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la testis_fw-la &_o mendacij_fw-la vindicis_fw-la call_v upon_o as_o a_o witness_n or_o arbitrator_n judge_n and_o avenger_n in_o case_n of_o falsehood_n 2._o have_v show_v what_o a_o oath_n be_v i_o come_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o take_v a_o oath_n when_o due_o call_v thereunto_o and_o this_o i_o shall_v endeavour_n to_o do_v by_o these_o four_o argument_n 1._o that_o which_o be_v moral_a and_o enjoin_v in_o one_o of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o decalogue_n or_o ten_o commandment_n bind_v all_o person_n whatsoever_o and_o be_v a_o duty_n to_o be_v continue_v and_o practise_v as_o there_o be_v occasion_n as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n endure_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o our_o neighbour_n but_o to_o swear_v by_o god_n when_o due_o call_v thereunto_o be_v a_o moral_a duy_n and_o enjoin_v in_o the_o three_o commandment_n therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o take_v a_o oath_n when_o due_o call_v thereunto_o the_o minor_a will_n easy_o be_v prove_v by_o that_o common_o receive_v rule_n of_o interpret_n the_o commandment_n viz._n that_o where_o in_o any_o commandment_n vice_n be_v forbid_v there_o the_o contrary_a virtue_n be_v enjoin_v and_o command_v so_o that_o the_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a be_v forbid_v in_o the_o three_o commandment_n the_o holy_a and_o reverend_a use_n thereof_o be_v plain_o enjoin_v and_o such_o be_v a_o appeal_n to_o god_n as_o the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n and_o call_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o our_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n and_o a_o avenger_n upon_o we_o in_o case_n of_o falsehood_n 2._o what_o god_n enjoin_v and_o connect_v with_o other_o duty_n that_o will_v ever_o be_v in_o force_n aught_o to_o be_v practise_v by_o all_o christian_n but_o swear_v by_o his_o name_n be_v such_o ergò_fw-la for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a see_v deut._n 6.13_o thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o and_o swear_v by_o his_o name_n see_v also_o deut._n 10.20_o where_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v enjoin_v that_o which_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o godly_a without_o reproof_n before_o the_o law_n under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o gospel_n be_v lawful_a but_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n upon_o serious_a and_o weighty_a occasion_n have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o godly_a in_o all_o those_o time_n ergò_fw-la 1._o before_o the_o law_n see_v instance_n hereof_o in_o abraham_n gen._n 14.22_o 23._o and_o abraham_n say_v to_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n i_o have_v lift_v up_o my_o hand_n unto_o the_o lord_n the_o most_o high_a god_n the_o possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o i_o will_v not_o take_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v thou_o even_o from_o a_o thread_n to_o a_o shoo-latchet_a in_o isaac_n gen._n 26.31_o and_o they_o rise_v up_o betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o swear_v one_o to_o another_o and_o isaac_n send_v they_o away_o and_o they_o depart_v from_o he_o in_o peace_n in_o jacob_n gen._n 31.53_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o god_n of_o
nahor_n the_o god_n of_o their_o father_n judge_v betwixt_o we_o and_o jacob_n swear_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o father_n isaac_n 2._o under_o the_o law_n see_v instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n joshua_n 9.19_o but_o all_o the_o prince_n say_v unto_o all_o the_o congregation_n we_o have_v swear_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n in_o david_n psal_n 119._o verse_n 106._o i_o have_v swear_v and_o i_o will_v perform_v it_o that_o i_o will_v keep_v thy_o righteous_a judgement_n 1_o sam._n 24.21_o 22._o swear_v now_o unto_o i_o by_o the_o lord_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o cut_v off_o my_o seed_n after_o i_o and_o that_o thou_o will_v not_o destroy_v my_o name_n out_o of_o my_o father_n house_n and_o david_n swear_v unto_o saul_n and_o saul_n go_v home_o etc._n etc._n 1_o king_n 1._o ver_fw-la 13_o 28_o 29._o 30._o go_v and_o get_v thou_o in_o unto_o david_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o do_v not_o thou_o my_o lord_n o_o king_n swear_v unto_o thy_o handmaid_n say_v assure_o solomon_n thy_o son_n shall_v reign_v after_o i_o and_o he_o shall_v sit_v upon_o my_o throne_n etc._n etc._n in_o elijah_n 1_o king_n 17._o verse_n 1_o and_o elijah_n the_o tishbite_n say_v unto_o ahab_n as_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n live_v before_o who_o i_o stand_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v rain_n etc._n etc._n in_o micaiah_n 1_o king_n 22.14_o and_o micaiah_n say_v as_o the_o lord_n live_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o that_o will_v i_o speak_v 3._o under_o the_o gospel_n see_v instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 1.18_o but_o as_o god_n be_v true_a our_o word_n towards_o you_o be_v not_o yea_o and_o nay_o verse_n 23._o i_o call_v god_n for_o a_o record_n upon_o my_o soul_n etc._n etc._n 2_o cor._n 12.19_o we_o speak_v before_o god_n in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n gal._n 1.20_o now_o these_o thing_n which_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o behold_v before_o god_n i_o lie_v not_o in_o the_o angel_n rev._n 10.5.6_o and_o the_o angel_n which_o i_o see_v stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o earth_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n and_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o etc._n etc._n 4._o that_o which_o be_v the_o most_o effectual_a way_n to_o end_v controversy_n between_o man_n and_o man_n in_o doubtful_a case_n and_o be_v of_o so_o great_a use_n and_o benefit_n to_o humane_a society_n be_v not_o to_o be_v lay_v aside_o but_o such_o be_v a_o oath_n ergò_fw-la the_o minor_a the_o apostle_n confirm_v heb._n 6.16_o for_o man_n very_o swear_v by_o the_o great_a and_o a_o oath_n for_o confirmation_n be_v to_o they_o a_o end_n of_o all_o strife_n oath_n strife_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v great_a d_o fference_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o man_n as_o be_v the_o person_n that_o sweare●h_v so_o be_v the_o oath_n more_o or_o less_o credible_a the_o better_a and_o the_o more_o conscientious_a the_o man_n the_o more_o credible_a be_v his_o oath_n there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o end_v some_o controversy_n but_o by_o a_o appeal_n to_o god_n as_o a_o judge_n and_o avenger_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o any_o doubtful_a case_n which_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v determine_v they_o be_v to_o accept_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o lord_n exodus_fw-la 22._o verse_n 11_o 12._o see_v therefore_o by_o a_o lawful_a oath_n god_n be_v glorify_v be_v appeal_v unto_o as_o the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o patron_n of_o truth_n and_o avenger_n of_o falsehood_n see_v his_o omniscience_n omnipresence_n truth_n justice_n and_o power_n be_v thereby_o acknowledge_v see_v it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o a_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n by_o himself_o command_v and_o last_o see_v it_o be_v the_o most_o effectual_a way_n to_o end_v controversy_n between_o man_n and_o man_n they_o that_o will_v have_v appeal_n to_o god_n in_o serious_a matter_n lay_v aside_o be_v injurious_a both_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o man_n 3._o i_o come_v now_o to_o answer_v the_o objection_n usual_o frame_v from_o matth._n 5.33_o etc._n etc._n and_o james_n 5.12_o against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o any_o swear_n at_o all_o the_o word_n of_o those_o two_o text_n be_v these_o matth._n 5._o verse_n 33._o again_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o have_v be_v say_v by_o they_o of_o old_a time_n thou_o shall_v not_o forswear_v thyself_o but_o shall_v perform_v unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o oath_n verse_n 34._o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o swear_v not_o all_o neither_o by_o heaven_n for_o it_o be_v god_n throne_n verse_n 35._o nor_o by_o the_o earth_n for_o it_o be_v his_o footstool_n neither_o by_o jerusalem_n for_o it_o be_v the_o city_n of_o the_o great_a king_n verse_n 36._o neither_o shall_v thou_o swear_v by_o thy_o head_n because_o thou_o can_v not_o make_v one_o hair_n white_a or_o black_a verse_n 37._o but_o let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o yea_o nay_o nay_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o these_o come_v of_o evil_a james_n 5.12_o but_o above_o all_o thing_n my_o brethren_n swear_v not_o neither_o by_o heaven_n neither_o by_o the_o earth_n neither_o by_o any_o other_o oath_n but_o let_v your_o yea_o be_fw-mi yea_o and_o your_o nay_o nay_o lest_o you_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n now_o for_o the_o clear_a understanding_n of_o these_o two_o scripture_n these_o two_o thing_n must_v be_v premise_v 1._o we_o must_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o rule_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o sound_a interpretation_n of_o any_o text_n that_o be_v difficult_a viz._n that_o no_o one_o scripture_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o other_o sense_n put_v upon_o it_o than_o what_o will_v fair_o agree_v with_o other_o scripture_n and_o firm_o stand_v with_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n 2._o we_o must_v have_v a_o special_a regard_n to_o the_o condition_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o this_o time_n when_o these_o precept_n be_v give_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o it_o seem_v be_v now_o common_o guilty_a of_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o of_o frequent_a familiar_a and_o customary_a swear_n in_o their_o ordinary_a communication_n which_o they_o make_v light_a of_o provide_v they_o do_v not_o swear_v false_o or_o forswear_v themselves_o 2._o they_o use_v much_o to_o swear_v by_o the_o creature_n 3._o they_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n of_o oath_n make_v by_o the_o creature_n esteem_v some_o of_o they_o to_o be_v bind_v and_o other_o not_z now_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n james_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v direct_v against_o these_o enormity_n which_o thing_n be_v premise_v i_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o word_n themselves_o matth._n 5._o verse_n 33._o you_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o have_v be_v say_v by_o they_o of_o old_a time_n thou_o shall_v not_o forswear_v thyself_o but_o shall_v perform_v unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o oath_n our_o saviour_n have_v before_o show_v the_o corrupt_a gloss_n and_o interpretation_n which_o the_o pharisee_n make_v on_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o commandment_n he_o come_v here_o to_o show_v how_o they_o do_v the_o like_a on_o the_o three_o also_o the_o pharisee_n it_o seem_v teach_v that_o if_o man_n do_v not_o forswear_v themselves_o they_o do_v fulfil_v the_o three_o commandment_n though_o they_o do_v swear_v familiar_o by_o god_n in_o their_o ordinary_a communicatication_n and_o sometime_o by_o the_o creature_n both_o these_o our_o saviour_n condemn_v verse_n 34._o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o swear_v not_o at_o all_o that_o be_v in_o your_o ordinary_a communication_n as_o be_v plain_a from_o verse_n 37._o no_v not_o by_o god_n which_o upon_o solemn_a occasion_n be_v lawful_a as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o much_o less_o by_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v always_o unlawful_a so_o that_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 12._o 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la juretis_fw-la omninò_fw-la scil_n temerè_fw-la &_o l●u●●er_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-la juramento_fw-la sic_fw-la intelligebant_fw-la pharisaei_n quod_fw-la perjurium_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la prohibeatur_fw-la interim_n temeraria_fw-la juramenta_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la communi_fw-la permit_v bant_z ______o glassius_n ______o particula_fw-la omninò_fw-la cum_fw-la restrictione_n est_fw-la accipienda_fw-la nimirum_fw-la de_fw-la juramento_fw-la temerario_fw-la quomodo_fw-la exod._n 20.10_o dicitur_fw-la nulla_fw-la opera_fw-la sabbaro_fw-la facienda_fw-la esse_fw-la i._n e._n profana_fw-la freid_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 12._o not_o at_o all_o must_v be_v understand_v with_o some_o limitation_n and_o restriction_n as_o when_o god_n forbid_v do_v any_o work_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o servile_a work_n of_o our_o calling_n and_o not_o of_o work_n of_o necessity_n or_o mercy_n so_o the_o prohibition_n of_o christ_n
nature_n to_o we_o and_o first_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o pure_a simple_a immaterial_a invisible_a be_v a_o spirit_n of_o transcendent_a glory_n joh._n 4.24_o not_o have_v any_o matter_n or_o corporcity_n nor_o be_v compound_v as_o body_n be_v and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o picture_n he_o to_o our_o eyesight_n nor_o represent_v he_o to_o our_o fancy_n under_o any_o bodily_a shape_n or_o figure_n whatsoever_o but_o shall_v raise_v our_o apprehension_n to_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a to_o the_o pure_a and_o most_o spiritual_a conception_n of_o he_o that_o we_o can_v possible_o frame_v we_o shall_v labour_v to_o see_v this_o invisible_a god_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n and_o observe_v his_o power_n and_o efficacy_n work_v in_o all_o his_o creature_n it_o be_v he_o that_o enlighten_v we_o by_o the_o sun_n and_o warm_v we_o by_o the_o fire_n and_o make_v our_o food_n to_o nourish_v we_o and_o his_o other_o creature_n to_o do_v we_o good_a the_o schoolman_n say_v there_o be_v three_o way_n of_o know_v god_n first_o per_fw-la viam_fw-la eminentiae_fw-la when_o we_o ascribe_v all_o possible_a perfection_n to_o he_o second_o per_fw-la viam_fw-la negationis_fw-la when_o we_o remove_v from_o he_o all_o imperfection_n whatsoever_o three_o per_fw-la viam_fw-la causationis_fw-la when_o we_o see_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o receive_v their_o be_v and_o all_o their_o power_n and_o perfection_n from_o he_o second_o god_n be_v a_o infinite_a be_v for_o whatsoever_o have_v no_o cause_n of_o be_v can_v have_v no_o bound_n or_o limit_n of_o be_v set_v to_o it_o for_o the_o reason_n why_o any_o be_v be_v bound_v limit_v and_o confine_v to_o such_o a_o measure_n and_o degree_n of_o be_v only_o be_v because_o the_o author_n of_o its_o existence_n communicate_v and_o bestow_v only_o so_o much_o be_v power_n and_o efficacy_n upon_o it_o and_o no_o more_o he_o that_o make_v it_o set_v limit_n and_o bound_n to_o it_o that_o hitherto_o its_o essence_n shall_v go_v and_o extend_v and_o no_o further_o all_o thing_n that_o receive_v their_o be_v as_o all_o thing_n create_v do_v can_v have_v no_o more_o of_o be_v life_n power_n or_o virtue_n than_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o author_n of_o their_o nature_n and_o as_o they_o receive_v their_o be_v from_o he_o so_o they_o receive_v their_o limitation_n to_o this_o or_o that_o set_a kind_n of_o be_v also_o the_o first_o be_v therefore_o that_o have_v nothing_o to_o give_v it_o be_v have_v nothing_o to_o give_v it_o limit_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o confine_v it_o to_o this_o or_o that_o kind_a form_n and_o degree_n of_o be_v as_o therefore_o the_o first_o be_v can_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o existence_n to_o itself_o so_o neither_o can_v it_o limit_v confine_v or_o bind_v itself_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o without_o it_o that_o can_v set_v bound_n or_o limit_n to_o it_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o essence_n unbounded_a unlimited_a and_o so_o absolute_o infinite_a and_o immense_a infinite_a in_o life_n and_o so_o eternal_a infinite_a in_o wisdom_n and_o so_o omniscient_a infinite_a in_o power_n and_o so_o omnipotent_a and_o infinite_a in_o goodness_n and_o all_o perfection_n that_o be_v therefore_o that_o have_v more_o power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n than_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o that_o be_v the_o be_v we_o call_v god_n that_o be_v that_o have_v communicate_v to_o all_o thing_n else_o the_o be_v power_n life_n virtue_n and_o all_o such_o perfection_n as_o they_o have_v be_v the_o god_n who_o we_o acknowledge_v adore_v and_o worship_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v the_o attribute_n of_o god_n more_o particular_o which_o be_v those_o glorious_a excellency_n god_n of_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n and_o propriety_n of_o his_o divine_a essence_n which_o declare_v and_o manifest_v his_o nature_n to_o we_o and_o whereby_o we_o be_v enable_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o conceive_v aright_o of_o he_o and_o these_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n incommunicable_a communicable_a first_o incommunicable_a which_o be_v such_o attribute_n as_o agree_v to_o god_n alone_o and_o can_v belong_v to_o any_o creature_n such_o as_o be_v his_o eternity_n omnipresence_n omnipotence_n omniscience_n second_o communicable_a which_o be_v such_o attribute_n which_o though_o they_o be_v infinite_a perfection_n in_o god_n yet_o some_o resemblance_n of_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o creature_n such_o be_v his_o wisdom_n holiness_n justice_n mercy_n and_o faithfulness_n i_o begin_v with_o his_o incommunicable_a attribute_n and_o eternal_a god_n be_v eternal_a i._o god_n be_v a_o eternal_a be_v and_o none_o be_v eternal_a but_o himself_o psal_n 90.2_o from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a thou_o be_v god_n that_o which_o have_v no_o cause_n have_v no_o beginning_n and_o that_o which_o have_v no_o beginning_n be_v eternal_a time_n which_o be_v a_o duration_n that_o have_v beginning_n and_o end_n be_v compatible_a to_o man_n and_o other_o visible_a creature_n aeviternity_n which_o be_v a_o duration_n that_o have_v a_o beginning_n but_o no_o end_n be_v compatible_a to_o good_a and_o evil_a angel_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o eternity_n which_o have_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_n belong_v only_o to_o god_n isai_n 57.15_o he_o be_v call_v the_o high_a and_o lusty_a one_o who_o inhabit_v eternity_n that_o be_v who_o alone_o be_v eternal_a he_o speak_v of_o eternity_n as_o a_o house_n or_o palace_n which_o a_o king_n inhabit_v or_o dwell_v in_o as_o his_o own_o peculiar_a possession_n in_o which_o no_o other_o man_n have_v any_o right_n but_o himself_o and_o 2_o pet._n 3.8_o the_o apostle_n say_v a_o thousand_o year_n with_o he_o be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o of_o his_o incommunicable_a attribute_n he_o be_v eternal_a let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o shall_v make_v of_o this_o attribute_n god_n eternity_n shall_v fill_v our_o soul_n with_o admire_a thought_n of_o he_o who_o can_v think_v of_o eternity_n without_o amazement_n man_n be_v a_o creature_n of_o few_o day_n and_o ere_o long_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o here_o our_o body_n be_v perish_v but_o our_o soul_n must_v last_v to_o eternity_n let_v we_o therefore_o mind_n thing_n eternal_a 2_o cor._n 4.18_o whatever_o we_o neglect_v let_v we_o labour_n to_o secure_v to_o ourselves_o eternal_a happiness_n zeuxi●_n that_o famous_a painter_n say_v he_o do_v pingere_fw-la aeternitati_fw-la he_o draw_v his_o picture_n with_o such_o care_n that_o they_o may_v last_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o be_v famous_a to_o eternity_n let_v we_o all_o so_o pray_v so_o read_v so_o live_v and_o do_v all_o that_o we_o do_v as_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o obtain_v a_o happy_a eternity_n nulla_fw-la satis_fw-la magna_fw-la securitas_fw-la ubi_fw-la periclitatur_fw-la aeternitas_fw-la we_o can_v never_o be_v over_o careful_a to_o secure_v our_o eternal_a state_n in_o bliss_n and_o happiness_n ii_o god_n be_v omnipresent_v omnipresent_v omnipresent_v or_o every_o where_o present_a he_o be_v not_o confine_v or_o limit_v to_o any_o place_n jer._n 23.24_o can_v any_o hide_v himself_o in_o secret_a place_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o see_v he_o say_v the_o lord_n do_v not_o i_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o israel_n psal_n 139.7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o cry_v out_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o spirit_n or_o whither_o shall_v i_o free_v from_o thy_o presence_n if_o i_o ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o make_v my_o bed_n in_o hell_n behold_v thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o take_v the_o wing_n of_o the_o morning_n and_o dwell_v in_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o sea_n even_o there_o shall_v thy_o hand_n lead_v i_o and_o thy_o right_a hand_n shall_v hold_v i_o if_o i_o say_v the_o darkness_n shall_v cover_v i_o even_o the_o night_n shall_v be_v light_n about_o i_o yea_o the_o darkness_n hide_v not_o from_o thou_o but_o the_o night_n shine_v as_o the_o day_n the_o darkness_n and_o the_o light_n be_v both_o alike_o to_o thou_o god_n omnipresence_n shall_v imprint_v a_o constant_a awe_n of_o his_o majesty_n upon_o our_o soul_n we_o shall_v always_o behave_v ourselves_o as_o those_o that_o believe_v he_o stand_v by_o he_o be_v neither_o shut_v up_o in_o nor_o exclude_v out_o of_o any_o place_n nay_o he_o be_v beyond_o all_o place_n or_o space_n where_o any_o creature_n be_v he_o be_v every_o where_o for_o his_o essence_n be_v unbounded_a and_o further_o this_o shall_v convince_v we_o that_o he_o be_v incomprehensible_a and_o that_o we_o can_v have_v a_o full_a adequate_a and_o comprehensive_a knowledge_n of_o he_o nostro_fw-la he_o non_fw-la esset_fw-la deus_fw-la magnus_fw-la nisi_fw-la esset_fw-la major_a captu_fw-la nostro_fw-la can_v thou_o by_o search_v
find_v out_o god_n can_v thou_o find_v out_o the_o almighty_a unto_o perfection_n say_v zophar_n job_n 11.7_o we_o may_v as_o well_o think_v to_o take_v up_o all_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n in_o a_o spoon_n as_o with_o our_o narrow_a understanding_n full_o to_o comprehend_v god_n stop_v then_o thy_o bold_a inquiry_n o_o vain_a man_n and_o remember_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o finite_a worm_n and_o god_n be_v infinite_a do_v not_o go_v about_o to_o measure_n god_n by_o thy_o narrow_a apprehension_n nor_o to_o question_n much_o less_o deny_v that_o of_o god_n which_o thou_o can_v not_o understand_v do_v not_o suspect_v what_o his_o word_n reveal_v of_o he_o but_o suspect_v thy_o own_o muddy_a understanding_n that_o can_v conceive_v no_o better_o of_o so_o a_o incomprehensible_a essence_n iii_o god_n be_v omnipotent_a omnipotent_a omnipotent_a mat._n 19.26_o with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a his_o essence_n be_v infinite_a his_o power_n must_v needs_o be_v infinite_a also_o his_o omnipotency_n consist_v in_o thing_n simple_o and_o absolute_o possible_a not_o in_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v do_v god_n can_v make_v contradiction_n true_a he_o can_v lie_v he_o can_v deny_v himself_o for_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o speak_v perfection_n but_o weakness_n convenientius_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ea_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la fieri_fw-la quam_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la ea_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n facere_fw-la say_v aquinas_n wary_o it_o be_v more_o convenient_a to_o say_v that_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v than_o that_o god_n can_v do_v they_o now_o god_n omnipotency_n shall_v make_v these_o impression_n on_o we_o first_o we_o shall_v stand_v in_o fear_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o judgement_n shall_v the_o lion_n roar_v and_o shall_v not_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n tremble_v shall_v omnipotency_n shake_v his_o rod_n over_o we_o and_o shall_v not_o we_o humble_v ourselves_o the_o dread_n of_o the_o heavenly_a majesty_n of_o his_o infinite_a greatness_n and_o power_n shall_v be_v still_o upon_o we_o indeed_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v under_o a_o slavish_a fear_n of_o god_n that_o be_v void_a of_o love_n as_o man_n fear_v a_o enemy_n but_o we_o shall_v fear_v sin_v against_o or_o displease_v so_o great_a a_o god_n the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o wisdom_n prov._n 16.6_o by_o it_o man_n depart_v from_o evil_n second_o we_o may_v see_v from_o hence_o what_o ground_n we_o have_v earnest_o to_o seek_v unto_o he_o in_o all_o our_o difficulty_n and_o distress_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o petition_n in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v this_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n let_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v never_o so_o strong_a god_n be_v strong_a than_o they_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n mat._n 16.18_o nothing_o encourage_v more_o to_o fervent_a prayer_n than_o a_o due_a apprehension_n of_o god_n omnipotence_n three_o this_o attribute_n shall_v imprint_v upon_o our_o heart_n a_o strong_a and_o steadfast_a confidence_n in_o god_n psal_n 9.10_o they_o that_o know_v thy_o name_n will_v trust_v in_o thou_o o_o what_o a_o encouragement_n be_v it_o to_o the_o saint_n that_o they_o have_v omnipotence_n engage_v for_o they_o o_o what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o that_o ever_o we_o shall_v distrust_v a_o almighty_a god_n he_o can_v supply_v our_o great_a want_n he_o can_v mitigate_v or_o remove_v our_o great_a pain_n he_o can_v deliver_v we_o from_o our_o great_a distress_n dan._n 3.17_o what_o will_v vain_a man_n have_v confidence_n in_o if_o he_o distrust_v omnipotence_n where_o can_v we_o be_v safe_a if_o not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o almighty_a mat._n 8.26_o why_o fear_v you_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n remember_v o_fw-fr christian_n in_o thy_o low_a estate_n and_o in_o the_o church_n great_a danger_n the_o almighty_a be_v able_a to_o raise_v his_o church_n or_o thou_o again_o even_o in_o a_o moment_n take_v heed_n of_o say_v in_o thy_o heart_n can_v god_n furnish_v a_o table_n in_o the_o wilderness_n psal_n 78.19_o read_v and_o consider_v these_o scripture_n prov._n 29.25_o the_o fear_n of_o man_n bring_v a_o snare_n but_o whoso_a put_v his_o trust_n in_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v safe_a psal_n 56.3_o 4._o what_o time_n i_o be_o afraid_a i_o will_v trust_v in_o thou_o in_o god_n i_o have_v put_v my_o trust_n i_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o flesh_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o jer._n 17.5_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n curse_a be_v the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n and_o who_o heart_n depart_v from_o the_o lord_n four_o god_n almightiness_n shall_v possess_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a admiration_n of_o he_o and_o cause_v we_o in_o heart_n and_o voice_n to_o magnify_v he_o o_o what_o a_o power_n be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o world_n of_o nothing_o which_o hang_v the_o earth_n in_o the_o air_n and_o uphold_v it_o without_o any_o foundation_n what_o a_o power_n be_v that_o which_o stretch_v out_o the_o heaven_n as_o a_o curtain_n and_o have_v so_o bespangle_v with_o star_n that_o glorious_a canopy_n what_o a_o power_n be_v that_o which_o at_o first_o place_v and_o since_o maintain_v all_o thing_n in_o their_o order_n which_o cause_v every_o part_n of_o nature_n to_o do_v its_o office_n which_o make_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n constant_o to_o keep_v their_o course_n jer._n 31.35_o the_o lord_n give_v the_o sun_n for_o a_o light_n by_o day_n and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o of_o the_o star_n for_o a_o light_n by_o night_n he_o divide_v the_o sea_n when_o the_o wave_n thereof_o do_v roar_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v his_o name_n isa_n 4.22_o it_o be_v he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n there_o of_o be_v as_o grasshopper_n it_o be_v he_o that_o stretch_v out_o the_o heaven_n as_o a_o curtain_n and_o spread_v they_o out_o as_o a_o tent_n to_o dwell_v in_o five_o and_o last_o god_n almightiness_n shall_v be_v a_o great_a comfort_n and_o support_v to_o all_o that_o have_v a_o interest_n in_o he_o wo_n to_o those_o the_o almighty_a be_v against_o but_o happy_a thrice_o happy_a be_v they_o that_o have_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o their_o refuge_n iu_o god_n be_v omniscient_a omniscient_a omniscient_a psal_n 147.5_o his_o understanding_n be_v infinite_a 1_o chron._n 28.9_o the_o lord_n search_v all_o heart_n and_o understand_v all_o the_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n 1_o sam._n ●6_n 7_o man_n look_v on_o the_o outward_a appearance_n but_o god_n look_v on_o the_o heart_n jer._n 17.10_o ay_o the_o lord_n search_v the_o heart_n i_o try_v the_o reins_o to_o give_v every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o way_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o do_n and_o chap._n 20.12_o he_o be_v say_v to_o see_v the_o reins_o and_o the_o heart_n now_o if_o god_n be_v omniscient_a how_o watchful_o and_o careful_o shall_v we_o carry_v ourselves_o in_o all_o place_n how_o shall_v we_o fear_v to_o sin_n in_o secret_a against_o he_o who_o eye_n be_v always_o upon_o we_o how_o sincere_a and_o upright_o shall_v we_o be_v in_o all_o our_o duty_n how_o shall_v this_o motto_n be_v ever_o in_o our_o mind_n cave_n deus_fw-la videt_fw-la take_v heed_n god_n see_v if_o our_o breast_n be_v crystal_a glass_n and_o man_n be_v able_a through_o they_o to_o see_v all_o the_o working_n of_o our_o heart_n how_o careful_a shall_v we_o be_v what_o thought_n we_o entertain_v alas_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o sensible_a that_o god_n always_o see_v we_o he_o see_v heart_n as_o we_o see_v face_n how_o many_o be_v afraid_a to_o commit_v a_o sin_n before_o man_n that_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o sin_n before_o the_o all-seeing_a eye_n of_o god_n if_o god_n be_v omniscient_a this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v sincere_a and_o upright_o and_o conscientious_o to_o endeavour_v both_o to_o avoid_v secret_a sin_n and_o to_o perform_v secret_a duty_n mat._n 6.6_o when_o thou_o pray_v enter_v into_o thy_o closet_n and_o when_o thou_o h●st_v shut_v the_o door_n pray_v to_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n whi●h_o see_v in_o secret_a shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o god_n incommunicable_a attribute_n i_o come_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o his_o communicable_a attribute_n which_o though_o they_o be_v infinite_a perfection_n in_o he_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o resemblance_n of_o they_o find_v in_o the_o creature_n i._o god_n be_v infinite_o wise_a wise_a infinite_o wise_a 1_o tim._n 1.17_o he_o be_v call_v the_o invisible_a and_o only_a wise_a god_n he_o administer_v the_o world_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o it_o with_o infinite_a wisdom_n
to_o look_v into_o the_o de●th_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n and_o can_v bu●_n cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o another_o case_n o_o the_o unsearchableness_n o_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o heavenly_a oeconomy_n in_o matter_n of_o so_o high_a a_o nature_n i_o believe_v more_o than_o i_o be_o able_a to_o understand_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n supply_v the_o defect_n of_o my_o understanding_n as_o consider_v in_o this_o or_o that_o man_n which_o be_v not_o all_o absolute_o against_o it_o we_o grant_v that_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o thing_n must_v be_v admit_v but_o reason_n as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o or_o that_o man_n may_v be_v very_o weak_a and_o imperfect_a and_o very_o short_a of_o a_o ju●t_n and_o a_o full_a comprehension_n of_o the_o whole_a reason_n of_o thing_n therefore_o that_o be_v no_o fit_a measure_n to_o try_v this_o divine_a doctrine_n by_o certain_o it_o be_v the_o high_a reason_n that_o in_o thing_n of_o pure_o divine_a revelation_n we_o shall_v captivate_v our_o understanding_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o revelator_n let_v we_o therefore_o earnest_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o apostle_n peter_n know_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o our_o saviour_n tell_v he_o matth._n 16.16_o 17._o that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o unto_o he_o but_o his_o father_n a_o man_n ought_v not_o present_o to_o desert_v his_o persuasion_n ground_v upon_o scripture_n because_o he_o can_v answer_v every_o objection_n that_o the_o subtle_a wit_n of_o man_n can_v make_v against_o it_o for_o though_o this_o or_o that_o private_a person_n may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v such_o objection_n yet_o other_o more_o learned_a and_o know_v may_v easy_o do_v it_o and_o to_o they_o he_o ought_v to_o betake_v himself_o for_o satisfaction_n thus_o i_o have_v show_v what_o be_v the_o original_a declaration_n or_o revelation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o how_o the_o same_o be_v explain_v by_o pious_a and_o learned_a man_n very_o suitable_o to_o that_o revelation_n and_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o give_v my_o reader_n these_o two_o further_a direction_n first_o if_o at_o any_o he_o be_v attaque_v by_o any_o adversary_n of_o this_o divine_a doctrine_n i_o advise_v he_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o hold_v he_o strict_o and_o peremtory_o to_o the_o original_a revelation_n and_o to_o put_v he_o to_o disprove_v if_o he_o can_v that_o god_n be_v one_o that_o the_o father_n be_v god_n the_o son_n god_n the_o holy_a gh●st_n god_n understand_v by_o god_n the_o most_o high_a god_n sovereign_a of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o he_o can_v do_v this_o as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o the_o testimony_n forecited_a he_o can_v with_o any_o show_n of_o reason_n do_v then_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o quarrel_v at_o the_o explanation_n and_o fall_v foul_o as_o their_o manner_n be_v upon_o the_o term_n trinity_n and_o personality_n and_o such_o like_a expression_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o literal_o a●d_v syllabical_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o original_a revelation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v and_o fair_o expolitory_n thereof_o and_o have_v give_v this_o hint_n or_o admonition_n which_o i_o think_v very_o needful_a at_o this_o time_n let_v i_o in_o the_o close_n up_o of_o this_o discourse_n advise_v all_o those_o that_o have_v any_o true_a desire_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o narrow_a path_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n which_o lead_v to_o everlasting_a bliss_n to_o labour_v in_o the_o first_o place_n judicious_o to_o understand_v this_o sacred_a doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o original_a revelation_n thereof_o make_v in_o the_o scripture_n when_o this_o be_v do_v the_o explanation_n thereof_o as_o we_o have_v here_o deliver_v it_o will_v not_o seem_v harsh_a to_o they_o nor_o to_o contain_v any_o thing_n unsuitable_a to_o that_o revelation_n and_o let_v i_o add_v this_o one_o word_n more_o that_o i_o fear_v the_o fail_n of_o so_o many_o man_n profession_n as_o we_o have_v see_v of_o late_a year_n have_v begin_v with_o their_o relinquish_a this_o foundation_n this_o have_v be_v the_o fatal_a miscarriage_n of_o those_o poor_a delude_a soul_n call_v quaker_n and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o some_o other_o more_o learned_a than_o they_o if_o they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v i_o suppose_v their_o other_o fond_a imagination_n will_v quick_o vanish_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o sect_n iii_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n earth_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o his_o glorious_a attribute_n and_o of_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n i_o come_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o his_o work_n viz._n creation_n providence_n and_o first_o of_o creation_n the_o apostle_n heb._n 11.3_o creation_n of_o creation_n tell_v we_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o understand_v that_o the_o world_n namely_o the_o inferior_a middle_a and_o superior_a as_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o distinguish_v they_o and_o all_o the_o creature_n in_o they_o be_v make_v and_o frame_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o certain_o this_o goodly_a fabric_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v not_o from_o eternity_n as_o aristotle_n that_o great_a philosopher_n destitute_a of_o scripture-light_n be_v incline_v to_o believe_v but_o be_v create_v and_o make_v at_o that_o time_n when_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o special_a motive_n as_o we_o may_v humble_o conceive_v which_o incline_v he_o to_o make_v it_o be_v a_o desire_n and_o purpose_n to_o express_v his_o infinite_a power_n to_o declare_v his_o transcendent_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o to_o exercise_v his_o alwise_a providence_n all_o conduce_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o praise_n some_o creature_n he_o make_v immediate_o out_o of_o nothing_o as_o the_o terminus_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la by_o a_o proper_a creation_n give_v they_o a_o real_a be_v which_o before_o they_o have_v not_o other_o thing_n he_o make_v out_o of_o some_o preaexistent_a matter_n which_o matter_n he_o have_v before_o make_v out_o of_o nothing_o by_o a_o mediate_a and_o improper_a kind_n of_o creation_n as_o he_o make_v adam_n body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n bernard_n earth_n the_o remembrance_n of_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o antidote_n against_o pride_n in_o all_o his_o posterity_n abraham_n gen._n 18.27_o acknowledge_v himself_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n cum_fw-la sis_fw-la humillimus_fw-la cur_n non_fw-la es_fw-la humillimus_fw-la say_v bernard_n and_o eve_n of_o adam_n rib_n when_o solomon_n be_v to_o build_v a_o magnificent_a temple_n for_o god_n he_o need_v many_o material_n deo_fw-la material_n exit_fw-la nihilo_fw-la nihil_fw-la fit_a id_fw-la est_fw-la physice_n &_o a_o creaturis_fw-la sod_a non_fw-la va●●t_fw-la regula_fw-la si_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la i●_n deo_fw-la and_o many_o workman_n and_o they_o many_o tool_n but_o god_n do_v not_o so_o he_o make_v all_o without_o any_o coadjutor_n or_o any_o instrument_n by_o the_o sole_a word_n of_o his_o command_n and_o when_o he_o look_v upon_o every_o thing_n he_o have_v make_v behold_v all_o be_v very_o good_a neh._n 9.6_o thou_o even_o thou_o be_v lord_n alone_o thou_o have_v make_v heaven_n the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n with_o all_o their_o host_n the_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v therein_o the_o sea_n and_o all_o that_o be_v therein_o and_o thou_o preserve_v they_o all_o and_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n worship_v thou_o colos_n 1.16_o for_o by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o be_v in_o earth_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o rev._n 4.11_o thou_o be_v worthy_a o_o lord_n to_o receive_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n for_o thou_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n and_o for_o thy_o pleasure_n they_o be_v and_o be_v create_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o creature_n god_n create_v be_v angel_n and_o men._n all_o the_o angel_n be_v at_o first_o make_v holy_a and_o happy_a spirit_n some_o of_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o be_v still_o angel_n of_o light_n other_o of_o they_o fall_v from_o god_n by_o pride_n and_o disobedience_n and_o be_v become_v devil_n of_o darkness_n first_o i_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o good_a angel_n angel_n
not_o their_o first_o station_n they_o sin_v against_o god_n and_o by_o sin_n fall_v from_o their_o happiness_n 3._o let_v we_o inquire_v how_o they_o come_v to_o sin_n be_v create_v pure_a they_o have_v no_o lust_n within_o to_o incline_v they_o to_o it_o and_o be_v in_o heaven_n they_o have_v no_o object_n without_o to_o draw_v or_o allure_v they_o to_o it_o neither_o have_v they_o any_o ●emp●●r_n before_o one_o or_o more_o of_o their_o own_o number_n fall_v to_o entice_v they_o to_o it_o some_o late_a divine_n conceive_v that_o the_o great_a angel●ow_o ●ow_z call_v belzebub_n first_o fall_v and_o then_o draw_v other_o by_o his_o temptation_n and_o seducement_n into_o the_o same_o rebellion_n and_o disobedience_n with_o himself_o for_o matth._n 25.44_o we_o read_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o matth._n 12.24_o of_o belzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o devil_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v probable_o conjecture_v there_o be_v some_o prince_n or_o chief_a of_o the_o apostate_n angel_n who_o be_v the_o ringleader_n in_o this_o faction_n and_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o if_o any_o shall_v further_o inquire_v how_o sin_n come_v into_o the_o angel_n at_o first_o all_o that_o we_o can_v say_v be_v this_o they_o be_v create_v good_a yet_o mutable_a and_o they_o voluntary_o choose_v not_o to_o abide_v in_o their_o first_o estate_n it_o be_v god_n prerogative_n only_o to_o be_v immutable_a all_o creature_n though_o never_o so_o pure_a if_o not_o assi_v by_o grace_n be_v mutable_a and_o may_v sin_v job_n 4.18_o behold_v he_o put_v no_o trust_n in_o his_o servant_n and_o his_o angel_n he_o charge_v with_o folly_n the_o angel_n be_v mutable_a creature_n may_v fall_v from_o their_o righteousness_n if_o leave_v to_o themselves_o and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v fall_v and_o god_n charge_v they_o judicial_o with_o folly_n for_o it_o they_o be_v create_v in_o a_o bless_a state_n and_o from_o that_o they_o may_v and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v fall_v but_o however_o it_o be_v we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o god_fw-we be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o fall_n by_o infuse_v any_o evil_n into_o they_o neither_o be_v he_o to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o consent_v to_o their_o sin_n in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o hinder_v they_o from_o it_o or_o in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o support_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n for_o he_o owe_v his_o grace_n to_o none_o and_o give_v it_o when_o and_o to_o who_o he_o please_v and_o in_o the_o angelical_a nature_n as_o well_o as_o the_o humane_a he_o will_v discover_v his_o justice_n and_o his_o mercy_n and_o the_o freedom_n of_o his_o dispensation_n 4._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o they_o fall_v how_o soon_o they_o fall_v we_o can_v certain_o determine_v it_o be_v probable_a they_o fall_v very_o soon_o for_o joh._n 8.44_o satan_n be_v call_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o 1_o joh._n 3.9_o it_o be_v say_v the_o devil_n sin_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v soon_o after_o the_o creation_n that_o these_o angel_n be_v create_v plain_o appear_v from_o col._n 1.16_o and_o probable_o they_o be_v create_v on_o the_o second_o day_n when_o the_o heaven_n the_o proper_a place_n of_o their_o residence_n be_v create_v it_o be_v certain_a they_o sin_v before_o man_n fall_v for_o the_o devil_n in_o and_o by_o the_o serpent_n seduce_v eve_n gen._n 3.1.2_o cor._n 11.3_o 5._o let_v we_o consider_v their_o number_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o number_n of_o these_o apostate_n angel_n be_v very_o great_a and_o that_o there_o be_v very_o many_o of_o they_o go_v up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o world_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o a_o whole_a legion_n of_o they_o be_v in_o one_o man_n luke_n 8.30_o explicat_fw-la 8.30_o legio_n apud_fw-la romanos_fw-la continebat_fw-la 12500_o mirite_n num●rus_fw-la certus_fw-la pro_fw-la incerto_fw-la ut_fw-la ipse_fw-la daemon_n explicat_fw-la but_o how_o great_a their_o number_n be_v can_v by_v we_o be_v certain_o determine_v 6._o let_v we_o consider_v their_o nature_n property_n and_o employment_n 1._o they_o be_v spirit_n of_o great_a knowledge_n cunning_a and_o subtlety_n they_o be_v subtle_a by_o nature_n and_o by_o long_a experience_n in_o tempt_a since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n their_o subtlety_n be_v much_o increase_v they_o can_v transform_v themselves_o into_o angel_n of_o light_n 2_o cor._n 11.14_o but_o this_o be_v observable_a they_o never_o move_v to_o good_a as_o it_o be_v good_a but_o as_o it_o may_v have_v some_o evil_a consequent_a upon_o it_o and_o further_o they_o know_v how_o to_o suit_v their_o temptation_n to_o the_o several_a temper_n of_o man_n they_o have_v much_o natural_a and_o experimental_a knowledge_n so_o as_o they_o can_v discern_v hide_a cause_n and_o virtue_n which_o man_n reason_n can_v reach_v unto_o they_o know_v how_o to_o apply_v active_n to_o passives_n they_o can_v guess_v notable_o at_o future_a event_n but_o as_o for_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o unless_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o depend_v upon_o necessary_a cause_n or_o have_v be_v some_o way_n or_o other_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n that_o they_o have_v not_o that_o knowledge_n be_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o according_o he_o challenge_v it_o unto_o himself_o isai_n 41.23_o show_v thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v hereafter_o that_o we_o may_v know_v you_o be_v god_n say_v he_o of_o the_o vanity_n and_o idol_n of_o the_o heathen_a they_o be_v of_o wonderful_a sagacity_n to_o judge_v of_o man_n heart_n by_o their_o outward_a gesture_n and_o carriage_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o do_v evil_a but_o to_o do_v good_a they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n 2._o their_o malice_n be_v very_o great_a this_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o life_n 1_o pet._n 5.8_o be_v sober_a be_v vigilant_a because_o your_o adversary_n the_o devil_n like_o a_o roar_a lion_n go_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v who_o resist_v steadfast_a in_o the_o faith_n his_o malice_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o go_v about_o do_v mischief_n though_o he_o know_v that_o he_o get_v no_o good_a by_o it_o nay_o though_o his_o punishment_n will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a for_o the_o mischief_n he_o do_v his_o malice_n be_v great_a against_o all_o mankind_n but_o principal_o against_o the_o saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n first_o because_o they_o bear_v the_o image_n of_o god_n second_o because_o they_o through_o grace_n resist_v his_o temptation_n here_o and_o shall_v as_o approver_n of_o christ_n righteous_a sentence_n judge_v he_o hereafter_o 1_o cor._n 6.3_o 3._o they_o be_v spirit_n of_o great_a power_n though_o it_o be_v limit_v by_o god_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v exercise_v but_o when_o and_o where_o and_o how_o it_o please_v he_o the_o devil_n do_v exercise_v his_o power_n as_o far_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o especial_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o saint_n obstinate_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v they_o from_o enjoy_v that_o happiness_n which_o he_o lose_v 4._o they_o be_v spirit_n of_o great_a industry_n to_o do_v mischief_n as_o we_o may_v see_v job_n 1.6.7_o the_o devil_n not_o only_o do_v all_o the_o outward_a mischief_n he_o can_v but_o he_o tempt_v also_o by_o inward_a suggestion_n for_o be_v a_o spirit_n he_o have_v communion_n with_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o can_v dart_v evil_a thought_n into_o we_o thus_o he_o fill_v the_o heart_n of_o judas_n to_o betray_v his_o lord_n and_o master_n thus_o he_o provoke_v david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n 1_o chron._n 21.1_o his_o temptatio●s_n be_v many_o time_n sudden_a impetuous_a importunate_a and_o his_o suggestion_n may_v oftentimes_o be_v know_v from_o those_o that_o arise_v from_o our_o own_o corrupt_a heart_n by_o the_o suddenness_n violence_n and_o unnaturalness_n of_o they_o those_o that_o arise_v from_o our_o own_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v usual_o please_v unto_o we_o but_o if_o the_o temptation_n be_v against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n as_o for_o one_o to_o kill_v a_o friend_n who_o he_o dear_o love_v and_o do_v fill_v the_o soul_n with_o horror_n as_o blasphemous_a thought_n do_v those_o may_v be_v reckon_v as_o satan_n fiery_a dart_n for_o they_o torment_v the_o mind_n as_o poison_a arrow_n do_v the_o body_n and_o by_o a_o humble_a recourse_n to_o christ_n for_o help_v we_o shall_v labour_v to_o quench_v these_o fiery_a dart_n our_o saviour_n himself_o be_v tempt_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o most_o hideous_a thing_n matth._n 4._o and_o have_v be_v tempt_v himself_o he_o know_v how_o to_o succour_v those_o that_o be_v tempt_v heb._n 2.18_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n therefore_o shall_v encourage_v themselves_o from_o these_o consideration_n 1._o a_o restraint_n be_v put_v on_o satan_n in_o all_o his_o temptation_n 1_o cor._n 10.13_o he_o
be_v faithful_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o what_o you_o be_v able_a 17._o consider_v the_o experience_n of_o god_n faithful_a servant_n who_o have_v be_v so_o assault_v and_o how_o they_o have_v be_v deliver_v scarce_o any_o of_o god_n child_n but_o have_v be_v more_o or_o less_o assault_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o let_v their_o experience_n of_o god_n support_v and_o help_n be_v thy_o encouragement_n 18._o instant_o repel_v the_o devil_n temptation_n do_v not_o muse_v or_o think_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o divert_v from_o they_o turn_v thy_o thought_n if_o thou_o can_v possible_o to_o something_o else_o 19_o if_o the_o devil_n still_o follow_v thou_o with_o his_o temptation_n take_v the_o advice_n of_o some_o faithful_a friend_n or_o minister_n to_o who_o impart_v thy_o case_n keep_v not_o the_o devil_n counsel_n if_o thy_o house_n be_v on_o fire_n call_v for_o help_v climacus_n in_o scala_n paradisi_fw-la make_v mention_n of_o one_o who_o be_v tempt_v twenty_o year_n together_o his_o mind_n be_v infest_a and_o turmoil_v with_o most_o grievous_a blasphemous_a thought_n who_o by_o reveal_v his_o condition_n at_o last_o to_o a_o faithful_a friend_n be_v sudden_o deliver_v from_o they_o 20._o if_o none_o of_o these_o way_n will_v do_v than_o not_o in_o a_o proud_a manner_n but_o holy_o despise_v the_o devil_n as_o traveller_n use_v to_o do_v bark_v dog_n this_o be_v gerson_n counsel_v who_o say_v he_o know_v one_o sudden_o cure_v thereby_o and_o add_v this_o as_o the_o reason_n thereof_o spiritus_fw-la quip_n superbissimus_fw-la non_fw-la diu_fw-la patitur_fw-la se_fw-la contemni_fw-la for_o this_o proud_a spirit_n the_o devil_n will_v not_o long_o endure_v or_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v contemn_v of_o providence_n providence_n of_o providence_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o of_o god_n work_n viz._n creation_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o viz._n providence_n concern_v which_o i_o shall_v make_v these_o inquiry_n 1._o what_o providence_n be_v and_o wherein_o it_o consist_v 2._o how_o it_o may_v appear_v there_o be_v such_o a_o providence_n 3._o what_o be_v the_o extent_n of_o this_o providence_n 4._o what_o be_v the_o objection_n usual_o make_v against_o this_o doctrine_n 5._o what_o be_v the_o use_v and_o practical_a improvement_n we_o shall_v make_v hereof_o 1._o for_o the_o first_o providence_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o sustain_v govern_v and_o order_v all_o the_o creature_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n it_o consist_v in_o two_o thing_n 1._o conservation_n 2._o gubernation_n 1._o conservation_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n manifest_v itself_o in_o preserve_v the_o creature_n he_o have_v make_v col._n 1.17_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v heb._n 1.3_o he_o sustain_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n all_o the_o creature_n as_o they_o be_v make_v by_o god_n so_o they_o continual_o depend_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o support_v and_o continue_v of_o their_o be_v their_o virtue_n and_o activity_n psal_n 39.6_o thou_o preserve_v man_n and_o beast_n neh._n 9.6_o thou_o even_o thou_o be_v lord_n alone_o thou_o have_v make_v heaven_n the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n with_o all_o their_o host_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v therein_o the_o sea_n and_o all_o that_o be_v therein_o and_o thou_o preserve_v all_o and_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n worship_v thou_o 2._o gubernation_n god_n providence_n reach_v all_o rule_v over_o all_o his_o creature_n psal_n 22.28_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o lord_n he_o be_v the_o governor_n among_o the_o nation_n eph._n 1.11_o he_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n lam._n 3.37_o who_o be_v he_o that_o say_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o i_o the_o lord_n command_v it_o not_o joh._n 5.17_o my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v efficiens_fw-la work_v una_fw-la eum_fw-la patre_fw-la continue_v operor_fw-la etiam_fw-la sabbatis_fw-la mundum_fw-la portans_fw-la &_o regens_fw-la mi●acula_fw-la faciens_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la eo_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la saenitatis_fw-la opus_fw-la efficiens_fw-la but_o second_o how_o may_v it_o appear_v there_o be_v such_o a_o providence_n answ_n 1._o from_o scripture_n 2._o from_o reason_n 1._o the_o scripture_n clear_o bear_v testimony_n to_o it_o amos_n 3.6_o shall_v there_o be_v evil_a in_o the_o city_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v it_o jer._n 10.23_o o_o lord_n i_o know_v that_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o himself_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n that_o walk_v to_o direct_v his_o step_n isai_n 45.7_o i_o form_n the_o light_n and_o create_v darkness_n i_o make_v peace_n and_o create_v evil_a i_o the_o lord_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n prov._n 15.3_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o every_o place_n behold_v the_o evil_a and_o the_o good_a james_n 4.15_o for_o that_o you_o ought_v to_o say_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v we_o shall_v live_v and_o do_v this_o and_o that_o job_n 5.12_o he_o disapppoint_v the_o device_n of_o the_o crafty_a so_o that_o their_o hand_n can_v perform_v their_o enterprise_n 2._o reason_n plain_o show_v it_o there_o be_v several_a argument_n from_o reason_n that_o may_v persuade_v we_o to_o the_o belief_n hereof_o 1._o the_o regular_a order_n and_o wise_a contrivance_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n with_o their_o mutual_a reference_n and_o subserviency_n of_o one_o to_o another_o together_o with_o their_o exact_a fitness_n and_o commodious_a aptness_n for_o the_o several_a use_n and_o purpose_n for_o which_o they_o be_v design_v the_o beauty_n the_o elegance_n the_o regularity_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o universe_n the_o regular_a motion_n of_o the_o heavenly_a body_n the_o vicissitude_n of_o day_n and_o night_n and_o of_o the_o season_n of_o the_o year_n winter_n spring_n summer_n and_o autumn_n the_o production_n of_o mineral_n the_o growth_n of_o plant_n the_o generation_n of_o animal_n according_a to_o their_o several_a species_n and_o kind_n the_o gather_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n into_o several_a nation_n under_o distinct_a policy_n and_o government_n their_o mutual_a commerce_n for_o the_o supply_v the_o necessity_n of_o each_o other_o with_o such_o thing_n as_o their_o several_a country_n afford_v the_o give_v to_o so_o many_o million_o of_o people_n a_o different_a face_n whereby_o the_o husband_n know_v his_o wife_n the_o father_n his_o child_n the_o master_n his_o servant_n the_o creditor_n his_o debtor_n the_o subject_a his_o prince_n be_v so_o many_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o alwise_a providence_n that_o preside_v over_o and_o govern_v the_o world_n and_o to_o conceive_v otherwise_o must_v needs_o be_v extreme_o irrational_a 2._o the_o natural_a instinct_n that_o god_n have_v put_v into_o unreasonable_a creature_n which_o direct_v and_o move_v they_o to_o do_v thing_n very_o wise_a and_o rational_a for_o their_o own_o preservation_n be_v another_o argument_n of_o providence_n prov._n 6.6_o 7_o 8._o go_v to_o the_o ant_n thou_o sluggard_n consider_v her_o way_n and_o be_v wise_a which_o have_v no_o guide_n overseer_n or_o ruler_n provide_v her_o meat_n in_o the_o summer_n and_o gather_v her_o food_n in_o the_o harvest_n jer._n 8.7_o yea_o the_o stork_n in_o the_o heaven_n know_v her_o appoint_a time_n and_o the_o turtle_n and_o the_o crane_n and_o the_o swallow_n observe_v the_o time_n of_o their_o come_n 3._o the_o suitable_a provision_n that_o god_n have_v make_v for_o all_o his_o creature_n be_v another_o argument_n to_o prove_v a_o providence_n he_o provide_v food_n for_o all_o fael_n ave_n sine_fw-la patrimonio_fw-la vivunt_fw-la minut._n fael_n and_o convey_v it_o to_o they_o in_o that_o quantity_n and_o season_n which_o be_v fit_a for_o they_o psal_n 145.15_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o wait_n upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o give_v they_o their_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n matth._n 6.26_o behold_v the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n for_o they_o sow_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o reap_v nor_o gather_v into_o barn_n yet_o our_o heavenly_a father_n feed_v they_o psal_n 147.9_o he_o give_v to_o the_o beast_n his_o food_n and_o to_o the_o young_a raven_n which_o cry_v 4._o it_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n not_o to_o preside_v over_o and_o govern_v the_o world_n which_o he_o have_v make_v to_o conceive_v this_o great_a ship_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v leave_v without_o a_o pilot_n to_o govern_v it_o and_o all_o thing_n here_o below_o to_o be_v neglect_v and_o suffer_v to_o run_v at_o random_n without_o any_o wise_a agent_n to_o superintend_v over_o they_o and_o to_o order_n and_o regulate_v they_o sure_o be_v very_o irrational_a 5._o god_n manifest_a appear_v sometime_o in_o execute_v visible_a and_o remarkable_a punishment_n on_o bold_a and_o
for_o which_o just_o to_o correct_v they_o 2._o god_n may_v love_v his_o child_n with_o a_o great_a love_n even_o then_o when_o he_o do_v sore_o afflict_v they_o 3._o though_o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4.8_o yet_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v with_o this_o limitation_n so_o far_o for_o thas_o to_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n seem_v fit_a and_o good_a and_o convenient_a for_o his_o people_n and_o no_o further_o 4._o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v but_o a_o seem_a prosperity_n it_o be_v many_o time_n real_o hurtful_a to_o they_o eccles_n 5.13_o i_o have_v see_v riches_n say_v solomon_n reserve_v for_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o owner_n thereof_o yea_o not_o only_o for_o their_o own_o hurt_n but_o for_o the_o hurt_n of_o many_o other_o round_o about_o they_o 5._o the_o outward_a calamity_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n through_o his_o sanctify_v of_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o prosperity_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o grace_n and_o furtherance_n of_o their_o glory_n it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o say_v david_n psal_n 119_o 71._o that_o i_o have_v be_v afflict_v 6._o eternity_n be_v long_o enough_o to_o punish_v the_o wicked_a who_o most_o prosper_v in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o to_o reward_v the_o righteous_a who_o suffer_v most_o deep_o for_o their_o righteousness_n have_v thus_o speak_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o divine_a providence_n and_o the_o extent_n of_o it_o and_o answer_v the_o objection_n usual_o make_v against_o it_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o let_v we_o all_o own_o and_o acknowledge_v and_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n actual_o work_v in_o the_o world_n let_v we_o not_o impute_v event_n to_o chance_v or_o fortune_n or_o fate_n but_o labour_n to_o see_v and_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o alwise_a and_o sovereign_a providence_n overrule_a order_v and_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n here_o below_o god_n be_v king_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n and_o do_v and_o will_v govern_v the_o creature_n he_o have_v make_v 2._o let_v we_o earnest_o beg_v god_n providential_a care_n over_o we_o and_o humble_o trust_v ourselves_o and_o our_o concernment_n to_o his_o disposal_n let_v we_o stir_v up_o and_o excite_v ourselves_o to_o depend_v on_o his_o providence_n from_o such_o consideration_n as_o these_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n to_o obtain_v any_o good_a thing_n we_o desire_v than_o by_o a_o humble_a depend_v on_o god_n for_o it_o and_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o his_o holy_a will_n no_o sure_a way_n to_o miss_v any_o good_a thing_n we_o desire_v than_o to_o be_v peremptory_a and_o inordinate_a in_o our_o desire_n of_o it_o 2._o why_o shall_v we_o not_o depend_v on_o god_n now_o who_o take_v care_n of_o we_o in_o the_o womb_n and_o when_o we_o hang_v on_o our_o mother_n breast_n and_o have_v all_o our_o life_n hitherto_o take_v care_n of_o we_o 3._o how_o easy_o can_v god_n help_v we_o in_o our_o great_a difficulty_n 4._o why_o shall_v we_o not_o depend_v on_o god_n for_o accessary_n on_o who_o we_o must_v depend_v for_o the_o main_a 3._o it_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n govern_v the_o world_n let_v we_o not_o disquiet_v ourselves_o upon_o any_o of_o these_o account_n 1._o because_o we_o be_v at_o present_a under_o many_o and_o various_a affliction_n for_o let_v we_o consider_v first_o all_o affliction_n have_v their_o commission_n from_o he_o job_n 5.6_o affliction_n come_v not_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n it_o be_v god_n that_o bring_v we_o and_o our_o affliction_n together_o second_o he_o suit_v and_o proportion_n our_o affliction_n he_o know_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o disease_n and_o what_o physic_n be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v it_o successive_a affliction_n be_v his_o coarse_n of_o physic_n to_o remove_v a_o stubborn_a malady_n three_o he_o sanctify_v affliction_n to_o his_o child_n and_o better_n they_o by_o they_o and_o so_o they_o tend_v to_o their_o great_a advantage_n 2._o let_v we_o not_o disquiet_v ourselves_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o posterity_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v very_o thoughtful_a what_o will_v become_v of_o our_o child_n which_o we_o shall_v leave_v behind_o we_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v though_o we_o must_v go_v hence_o yet_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n never_o die_v gen._n 48.21_o behold_v i_o die_v say_v jacob_n to_o joseph_n but_o god_n shall_v be_v with_o you_o and_o bring_v you_o again_o to_o the_o land_n of_o your_o father_n let_v we_o commit_v our_o child_n to_o the_o care_n of_o that_o gracious_a providence_n which_o have_v watch_v over_o we_o for_o our_o good_a all_o our_o day_n 3._o let_v we_o not_o disquiet_v ourselves_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n let_v we_o remember_v what_o our_o saviour_n have_v promise_v viz._n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n matth._n 16.18_o 4._o let_v we_o labour_n to_o get_v a_o interest_n in_o the_o essential_a love_n and_o favour_n of_o this_o god_n who_o govern_v the_o world_n by_o his_o providence_n if_o he_o be_v our_o reconcile_a father_n in_o christ_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v what_o man_n or_o devil_n can_v do_v unto_o we_o 5._o let_v we_o study_v the_o promise_n especial_o those_o that_o be_v make_v to_o assure_v we_o of_o god_n care_v for_o we_o such_o as_o rom._n 8.28_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a to_o they_o that_o love_n god_n to_o they_o who_o be_v the_o call_v according_a to_o his_o purpose_n see_v also_o psal_n 84.11_o and_o heb._n 13.5_o 6._o and_o last_o let_v we_o reflect_v upon_o our_o former_a experience_n of_o god_n merciful_a care_n over_o we_o and_o his_o gracious_a order_v our_o affair_n and_o concern_v for_o we_o when_o we_o humble_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o thereby_o let_v we_o encourage_v ourselves_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o with_o a_o holy_a confidence_n for_o time_n to_o come_v chap._n ii_o of_o man._n sect_n i._o of_o the_o happy_a state_n wherein_o man_n be_v create_v earth_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n concern_v man_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o thing_n 1._o the_o happy_a estate_n in_o which_o he_o be_v create_v 2._o his_o fall_n 3._o the_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o his_o recovery_n 1._o the_o happy_a estate_n in_o which_o he_o be_v create_v this_o i_o shall_v labour_v to_o clear_v in_o several_a proposition_n 1._o god_n make_v man_n at_o first_o after_o his_o own_o image_n the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n consist_v principal_o in_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n soul_n which_o be_v a_o spirit_n represent_v god_n who_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o this_o i_o may_v call_v his_o natural_a image_n 2._o in_o the_o gracious_a quality_n wherewith_o it_o be_v at_o first_o endue_v viz._n knowledge_n holiness_n righteousness_n which_o i_o may_v call_v his_o moral_a image_n so_o that_o man_n original_a moral_a rectitude_n may_v be_v understand_v to_o consist_v in_o these_o particular_n 1._o in_o the_o perfect_a illumination_n of_o his_o mind_n whereby_o he_o understand_v the_o will_n and_o law_n of_o god_n and_o whatever_o concern_v his_o duty_n 2._o in_o the_o ready_a compliance_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o will_n therewith_o 3._o in_o the_o obedient_a subordination_n of_o his_o sensitive_a appetite_n and_o his_o inferior_a faculty_n to_o the_o guidance_n of_o his_o enlighten_v mind_n and_o holy_a will_n and_o every_o part_n of_o this_o original_a righteousness_n be_v con-natural_a and_o concreated_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o a_o qualification_n which_o fit_v and_o prepare_v he_o for_o communion_n with_o his_o creator_n 3._o in_o the_o dominion_n god_n give_v he_o over_o the_o creature_n here_o below_o gen._n 1.26_o psal_n 8.6_o 7_o 8._o thou_o mad'_v he_o to_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n thou_o h●●t_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n all_o sheep_n and_o ox_n ye●●●d_o t●e_v b●●ts_n of_o the_o field_n the_o fowl_n ●f_n the_o air_n and_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n etc._n etc._n further_n his_o b●dy_n be_v so_o exact_o frame_v at_o first_o as_o to_o be_v a_o habitation_n for_o so_o excellent_a a_o s●ul_n a_o fit_a instrument_n for_o its_o opinion_n and_o in_o it_o there_o be_v some_o trace_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n 〈◊〉_d ●orth_o as_o a_o body_n be_v capable_a of_o represent_v the_o sovereign_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d viz._n in_o the_o majesty_n and_o comeliness_n of_o man_n face_n and_o 〈◊〉_d ●●●nance_n therefore_o god_n say_v he_o that_o shed_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n 〈…〉_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v be_v he_o ge●_n 9_o ●_o have_v thus_o show_v how_o god_n
his_o disciple_n matth._n 13.16_o 17._o bless_a be_v your_o eye_n for_o they_o see_v and_o your_o ear_n for_o they_o hear_v for_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o many_o prophet_n and_o righteous_a man_n have_v desire_v to_o see_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o see_v and_o have_v not_o see_v they_o and_o to_o hear_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o hear_v and_o have_v not_o hear_v they_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o a_o clear_a discovery_n of_o eternal_a life_n shall_v be_v reserve_v to_o christ_n himself_o now_o the_o veil_n be_v do_v away_o 3._o a_o less_o forcible_a influence_n and_o efficacy_n accompany_v the_o old_a administration_n than_o do_v the_o new_a the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o pour_v forth_o more_o abundant_o since_o his_o ascension_n and_o a_o more_o mighty_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n accompany_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o 4._o a_o more_o servile_a spirit_n act_v in_o those_o who_o be_v under_o the_o old_a administration_n they_o be_v draw_v general_o more_o by_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n than_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n 5._o in_o respect_n of_o extent_n they_o much_o differ_v for_o the_o old_a be_v reveal_v but_o to_o few_o in_o comparison_n viz._n to_o the_o jew_n and_o their_o proselyte_n whereas_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v hold_v forth_o to_o all_o nation_n 6._o the_o old_a covenant_n be_v to_o last_v but_o for_o a_o time_n viz._n till_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n heb._n 9.10_o but_o the_o new_a be_v to_o last_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v never_o wax_v old_a or_o wear_v away_o 7._o they_o differ_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o sacrament_n circumcision_n and_o the_o passeover_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a sacrament_n under_o the_o old_a administration_n be_v bloody_a sacrament_n for_o christ_n blood_n be_v then_o to_o be_v shed_v but_o under_o the_o new_a our_o sacrament_n be_v unbloody_a for_o christ_n blood_n be_v shed_v 8._o they_o differ_v as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o ratification_n the_o old_a be_v ratify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o levitical_a sacrifice_n the_o new_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v thus_o speak_v of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o general_n and_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a dispensation_n thereof_o in_o particular_a let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o use_n we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o let_v we_o bless_v god_n for_o make_v this_o covenant_n with_o fall_v man._n let_v we_o consider_v the_o freeness_n of_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o we_o but_o our_o misery_n to_o move_v he_o to_o it_o and_o he_o make_v no_o such_o covenant_n with_o the_o angel_n that_o fall_v 2._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o sureness_n of_o it_o god_n have_v confirm_v it_o 1._o by_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n 2._o by_o his_o oath_n 3._o by_o his_o sea_n it_o be_v indeed_o call_v sometime_o a_o covenant_n and_o sometime_o a_o testament_n a_o covenant_n with_o reference_n to_o god_n the_o father_n who_o have_v make_v this_o gracious_a covenant_n with_o the_o child_n of_o man_n and_o in_o it_o have_v promise_v many_o great_a privilege_n and_o blessing_n unto_o they_o that_o perform_v the_o condition_n therein_o require_v he_o promise_v in_o this_o covenant_n 1._o that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n heb._n 8.10_o and_o that_o be_v a_o very_a large_a and_o comprehensive_a promise_n 2._o that_o he_o will_v forgive_v all_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o when_o god_n show_v mercy_n to_o his_o people_n of_o israel_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v remember_v his_o covenant_n exod._n 2.24_o and_o the_o saint_n of_o old_a do_v use_v in_o their_o approach_n to_o god_n to_o plead_v this_o covenant_n and_o to_o ground_v their_o faith_n and_o hope_n on_o it_o psal_n 74.20_o jer._n 14.21_o 3._o that_o he_o will_v renew_v and_o sanctify_v our_o nature_n and_o write_v his_o law_n upon_o our_o heart_n 4._o that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n into_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o jer._n 32.40_o and_o so_o will_v preserve_v we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o power_n from_o total_a and_o final_a apostasy_n 5._o that_o no_o outward_a thing_n that_o he_o see_v good_a for_o we_o shall_v be_v want_v to_o we_o 6._o that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o eternal_a glory_n in_o the_o other_o life_n and_o as_o it_o be_v call_v a_o covenant_n with_o reference_n to_o ●od_n so_o it_o be_v call_v a_o testament_n with_o reference_n to_o christ_n who_o by_o his_o blood_n and_o death_n confirm_v it_o and_o as_o a_o testator_n bequeath_v life_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o penitent_a believer_n he_o have_v all_o power_n and_o authority_n give_v he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n mat._n 28.18_o 2._o let_v we_o bless_v god_n that_o we_o be_v bear_v under_o the_o best_a dispensation_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v a_o unvaluable_a mercy_n to_o be_v bear_v under_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o gospel_n dispensation_n this_o be_v call_v a_o good_a covenant_n as_o be_v establish_v on_o better_a promise_n heb._n 8.6_o viz._n more_o spiritual_a more_o clear_a and_o more_o extensive_a the_o old_a be_v a_o ministration_n of_o the_o letter_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o 7_o 8._o it_o literal_o declare_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v but_o comparative_o there_o be_v little_a spiritual_a ability_n afford_v for_o the_o perform_n of_o the_o thing_n enjoin_v i_o say_v comparative_o the_o old_a have_v but_o a_o weak_a operation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o new_a not_o that_o the_o old_a have_v no_o spiritual_a efficacy_n for_o many_o under_o it_o be_v eminent_a in_o grace_n as_o abraham_n moses_n josiah_n hezekiah_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o more_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v reserve_v till_o christ_n ascension_n 3._o as_o ever_o we_o expect_v to_o enjoy_v the_o privilege_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n let_v we_o make_v conscience_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n therein_o require_v which_o be_v these_o 1._o repentance_n which_o be_v a_o grace_n necessary_a to_o prepare_v we_o to_o receive_v christ_n 2._o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o can_v become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n gal._n 3.26_o 3._o obedience_n which_o be_v a_o grace_n necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o to_o walk_v answerable_o to_o this_o holy_a covenant_n deut._n 10.12_o 13._o and_o now_o israel_n what_o do_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n require_v of_o thou_o but_o to_o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o to_o love_v he_o and_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o statute_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n for_o thy_o good_a chap._n iii_o of_o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man._n sect_n i._o of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o mediator_n lord_n i_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n concern_v who_o we_o shall_v inquire_v 1._o what_o his_o title_n be_v by_o which_o he_o be_v call_v the_o title_n give_v he_o in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n be_v four_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n of_o all_o which_o i_o shall_v speak_v in_o order_n 1._o jesus_n jesus_n jesus_n which_o signify_v a_o saviour_n god_n by_o a_o angel_n give_v he_o that_o name_n matth._n 1.21_o he_o be_v design_v by_o god_n the_o father_n to_o perform_v for_o the_o child_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o be_v imply_v in_o his_o name_n jesus_n denote_v the_o work_n and_o business_n for_o which_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n tell_v the_o shepherd_n luke_n 2.11_o unto_o you_o be_v bear_v this_o day_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o saviour_n who_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n so_o 1_o tim._n 1.15_o this_o be_v a_o faithful_a say_n and_o worthy_a of_o all_o acceptation_n that_o jesus_n christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n and_o here_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o jesus_n be_v a_o saviour_n and_o why_o true_o and_o proper_o so_o call_v this_o will_v more_o particular_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o great_a evil_n he_o save_v we_o from_o and_o the_o great_a benefit_n he_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o 1._o he_o save_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o exact_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n and_o by_o his_o suffering_n and_o passion_n he_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n he_o have_v tread_v the_o wine-press_n of_o his_o father_n wrath_n for_o we_o rev._n 19.15_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o
stone_n roll_v to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n matth._n 27.60_o thus_o the_o design_n of_o the_o jew_n make_v his_o grave_n with_o the_o wicked_a intend_v he_o shall_v be_v bury_v with_o they_o who_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o but_o the_o design_n of_o heaven_n place_v he_o with_o the_o rich_a in_o his_o death_n and_o cause_v a_o councillor_n and_o a_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o bury_v he_o so_o that_o we_o may_v interpret_v that_o place_n of_o isaiah_n thus_o he_o be_v bury_v nigh_o to_o the_o wicked_a yet_o with_o the_o rich_a when_o he_o be_v dead_a our_o saviour_n notwithstanding_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v thus_o honourable_o bury_v the_o chief_a priest_n desire_v of_o pilate_n that_o the_o sepulchre_n may_v be_v make_v sure_a lest_o his_o disciple_n shall_v steal_v he_o away_o which_o be_v according_o do_v the_o stone_n be_v seal_v with_o the_o public_a seal_n and_o then_o a_o watch_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o sepulchre_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o this_o article_n 1._o then_o see_v christ_n do_v real_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v let_v we_o testify_v our_o communion_n with_o he_o in_o his_o death_n by_o die_v unto_o sin_n 2._o in_o his_o burial_n by_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o old_a man_n 3._o in_o his_o resurrection_n by_o rise_v unto_o newness_n of_o life_n this_o the_o apostle_n hint_n to_o we_o as_o our_o duty_n rom._n 6.4_o therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o like_a as_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n even_o so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n sect_n vi_o of_o that_o article_n in_o the_o creed_n hell_n descend_v into_o hell_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n after_o christ_n crucifixion_n death_n and_o burial_n the_o creed_n subjoin_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n in_o treat_v of_o which_o i_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n suggest_v this_o that_o this_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n be_v not_o in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o by_o origen_n lib._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o tertullian_n adversus_fw-la prax._n cap._n 2._o it_o be_v not_o in_o those_o creed_n that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o council_n as_o explication_n of_o this_o creed_n particular_o not_o in_o the_o nicene_n where_o the_o word_n be_v these_o he_o be_v crucify_a for_o we_o under_o pontius_n pilate_n he_o suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o rise_v again_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o any_o of_o the_o oriental_a creed_n this_o be_v premise_v we_o come_v to_o consider_v this_o article_n which_o can_v with_o any_o show_n of_o reason_n be_v understand_v of_o christ_n divine_a nature_n which_o be_v every_o where_o present_a and_o can_v be_v say_v either_o to_o ascend_v or_o descend_v it_o must_v therefore_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o here_o it_o will_v be_v needful_a to_o inquire_v whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o soul_n or_o of_o his_o body_n if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o soul_n it_o must_v be_v mean_v either_o metaphorical_o or_o real_o some_o understand_v it_o metaphorical_o and_o so_o by_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n they_o understand_v those_o inexpressible_a suffering_n of_o his_o soul_n 16._o soul_n see_v calv._n instit_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 16._o which_o of_o all_o his_o suffering_n be_v the_o most_o grievous_a by_o which_o he_o feel_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n in_o his_o soul_n for_o our_o sin_n but_o these_o suffering_n be_v all_o antecedent_n to_o his_o death_n he_o have_v suffer_v part_n of_o they_o in_o the_o garden_n and_o part_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o all_o before_o he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o say_v it_o be_v finish_v and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n but_o the_o descent_n into_o hell_n as_o it_o now_o stand_v in_o the_o creed_n seem_v to_o signify_v something_o do_v after_o his_o death_n beside_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o damn_a be_v sure_o such_o as_o these_o 1._o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o the_o never-dying_a worm_n 2._o a_o bitter_a sense_n of_o a_o utter_a rejection_n from_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n 3._o despair_v of_o ever_o be_v ease_v of_o that_o unsupportable_a misery_n now_o certain_o none_o of_o these_o can_v befall_v our_o saviour_n he_o do_v not_o endure_v so_o much_o as_o for_o a_o moment_n any_o of_o the_o hellish_a torment_n therefore_o sure_o in_o this_o sense_n christ_n soul_n do_v not_o descend_v into_o hell_n other_o hold_v that_o christ_n soul_n do_v real_o and_o by_o a_o local_a motion_n descend_v into_o hell_n this_o they_o pretend_v 1._o to_o prove_v and_o that_o from_o three_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o 2._o to_o assign_v the_o end_n for_o which_o he_o do_v thus_o descend_v we_o shall_v examine_v both_o first_o they_o say_v that_o though_o these_o word_n be_v not_o formal_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n yet_o they_o be_v contain_v virtual_o in_o they_o which_o they_o will_v prove_v 1._o from_o eph._n 4.9_o now_o that_o he_o ascend_v what_o be_v it_o but_o that_o he_o also_o descend_v first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o which_o they_o understand_v hell_n for_o answer_n by_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o humble_o conceive_v be_v mean_v the_o earth_n itself_o which_o be_v the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o heaven_n be_v the_o high_a for_o before_o christ_n can_v ascend_v unto_o heaven_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v descend_v to_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o incarnation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o his_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o further_o the_o grave_n may_v be_v call_v one_o of_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o surface_n or_o upper_a part_n of_o it_o on_o which_o we_o live_v and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v mean_v in_o this_o place_n 2._o they_o pretend_v to_o prove_v it_o from_o 1_o pet._n 3.19_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v quicken_v or_o raise_v up_o again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n by_o which_o he_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n whence_o they_o infer_v that_o he_o descend_v into_o hell_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n there_o in_o torment_n answer_v from_o these_o word_n it_o appear_v 1._o that_o christ_n preach_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o which_o he_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o that_o spirit_n be_v not_o his_o soul_n but_o something_o of_o a_o great_a power_n 2._o those_o to_o who_o he_o preach_v be_v disobedient_a all_o that_o time_n the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n wait_v for_o their_o repentance_n and_o return_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v prepare_v and_o 3._o their_o soul_n or_o spirit_n for_o their_o disobedience_n be_v now_o in_o hell_n and_o for_o refuse_v of_o that_o mercy_n that_o be_v offer_v to_o they_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o this_o be_v not_o perform_v by_o a_o immediate_a act_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v personal_o appear_v on_o earth_n and_o actual_o preach_v to_o the_o old_a world_n but_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o noah_n who_o be_v guide_v and_o inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o according_o be_v call_v a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n 2_o pet._n 2.5_o the_o three_o place_n they_o allege_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o opinion_n be_v act_v 2.25_o 26_o 27_o a_o place_n that_o relate_v to_o psal_n 16.10_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o say_v they_o sure_o christ_n soul_n do_v local_o descend_v into_o hell_n i_o answer_v soul_n be_v sometime_o take_v proper_o only_a for_o the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n sometime_o improper_o for_o the_o whole_a person_n as_o act_n 27.37_o we_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n two_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o sixteen_o soul_n sometime_o the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nephesh_n which_o signify_v a_o soul_n do_v also_o signify_v a_o dead_a body_n as_o levit._n 19.28_o you_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o cut_n in_o your_o flesh_n for_o the_o dead_a levit._fw-la 21._o v._o 1._o there_o shall_v none_o be_v defile_v for_o the_o dead_a among_o his_o people_n numb_a 6.6_o all_o the_o day_n that_o he_o separate_v himself_o unto_o the_o lord_n he_o shall_v come_v at_o no_o
and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o show_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o his_o foot_n 3._o for_o a_o further_a proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o manner_n of_o it_o and_o his_o several_a appearing_n after_o it_o 1._o very_o early_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n with_o a_o great_a earthquake_n our_o lord_n arise_v and_o a_o angel_n descend_v roll_v away_o the_o stone_n and_o sit_v thereon_o the_o watchman_n be_v fright_v away_o 2._o marry_o magdalen_n joanna_n mary_n the_o mother_n of_o james_n with_o other_o come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n with_o spice_n prepare_v to_o embalm_v he_o the_o angel_n speak_v to_o they_o not_o to_o be_v afraid_a but_o to_o come_v and_o see_v where_o jesus_n have_v be_v lay_v but_o be_v now_o rise_v he_o bid_v they_o go_v tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o in_o galilee_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o 3._o the_o woman_n go_v and_o tell_v the_o same_o to_o the_o disciple_n but_o their_o word_n seem_v to_o they_o as_o idle_a tale_n 4._o peter_n and_o john_n run_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n in_o which_o jesus_n be_v wrap_v but_o his_o body_n be_v not_o there_o they_o return_v home_o wonder_v but_o marry_o magdalen_n still_o stay_v there_o weep_v and_o look_v back_o she_o see_v jesus_n yet_o think_v it_o have_v be_v the_o gardener_n but_o upon_o his_o speak_n to_o she_o she_o discern_v that_o it_o be_v he._n this_o be_v his_o first_o appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n appear_v 1._o appear_v she_o go_v to_o embrace_v his_o foot_n which_o he_o forbid_v but_o send_v she_o to_o tell_v his_o disciple_n who_o he_o call_v his_o brethren_n which_o she_o according_o do_v but_o they_o believe_v she_o not_o the_o other_o woman_n run_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o try_v if_o they_o likewise_o can_v see_v he_o and_o be_v there_o tell_v by_o the_o angel_n that_o he_o be_v rise_v christ_n meet_v they_o in_o the_o way_n and_o say_v all-hail_a and_o send_v they_o to_o his_o brethren_n to_o tell_v they_o they_o shall_v meet_v he_o in_o galilee_n appear_v 2._o appear_v this_o be_v his_o second_o appear_v the_o affright_a watchman_n who_o have_v flee_v into_o the_o city_n and_o have_v acquaint_v the_o chief_a priest_n with_o all_o that_o have_v happen_v have_v money_n give_v they_o to_o say_v that_o his_o disciple_n steal_v he_o away_o while_o we_o sleep_v but_o how_o miserable_a a_o fiction_n be_v this_o for_o if_o they_o have_v steal_v his_o body_n away_o which_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o can_v they_o have_v put_v life_n into_o it_o appear_v 3._o appear_v and_o we_o see_v our_o saviour_n be_v alive_a again_o his_o three_o appear_v be_v to_o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n his_o four_o be_v to_o simon_n peter_n appear_v 4._o appear_v his_o five_o appear_v be_v to_o his_o disciple_n meet_v together_o thomas_n be_v absent_a appear_v 5._o appear_v here_o he_o show_v they_o his_o pierce_a hand_n and_o side_n harmony_n see_v these_o thing_n moreful_o set_v down_o in_o the_o 8_o ch._n of_o the_o 6_o book_n of_o my_o harmony_n and_o eat_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o broil_a fish_n and_o a_o honeycomb_n with_o they_o bid_v they_o tarry_v at_o jerusalem_n till_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v pour_v forth_o upon_o they_o he_o give_v they_o a_o new_a commission_n and_o breath_n on_o they_o say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n add_v who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v thus_o he_o appear_v five_o time_n on_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n his_o six_o appear_v be_v to_o his_o disciple_n on_o the_o eight_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n appear_v 6._o appear_v be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n thomas_n be_v present_a who_o he_o condescend_v so_o far_o to_o satisfy_v that_o he_o cry_v out_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n appear_v 7._o appear_v his_o seven_o appear_v be_v to_o several_a of_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o sea_n of_o tyberias_fw-la as_o they_o be_v fish_v he_o help_v they_o to_o a_o great_a draught_n of_o fish_n have_v before_o catch_v nothing_o whereby_o they_o know_v he_o peter_n cast_v himself_o into_o the_o sea_n to_o swim_v unto_o he_o the_o other_o disciple_n come_v to_o he_o by_o boat_n he_o eat_v with_o they_o bread_n and_o fish_n he_o ask_v peter_n thrice_o whether_o he_o love_v he_o and_o command_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n he_o foretell_v he_o of_o his_o future_a suffering_n and_o reprove_v he_o for_o his_o question_n concern_v john_n appear_v 8._o appear_v his_o eight_o appear_v be_v on_o a_o mountain_n in_o galilee_n to_o above_o five_o hundred_o at_o once_o where_o he_o give_v commission_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o baptize_v the_o convert_v and_o promise_n that_o not_o only_o many_o shall_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n but_o that_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n shall_v be_v confer_v on_o they_o that_o believe_v as_o cast_v out_o devil_n speak_v with_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n appear_v ●_o appear_v his_o nine_o appear_v be_v to_o james_n his_o ten_o and_o last_o be_v on_o the_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n appear_v 10._o appear_v at_o which_o time_n have_v command_v they_o to_o wait_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o descend_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o and_o answer_v their_o question_n whether_o he_o will_v restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n at_o that_o time_n or_o no_o he_o lead_v they_o forth_o to_o mount_n olivet_n and_o there_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o blessing_n they_o he_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n two_o angel_n appear_v to_o they_o assure_v they_o that_o he_o will_v so_o come_v to_o judgement_n as_o they_o have_v see_v he_o go_v to_o heaven_n and_o thus_o much_o for_o our_o saviour_n several_a appearing_n after_o his_o resurrection_n four_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o our_o saviour_n arise_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v god_n himself_o for_o no_o other_o power_n than_o that_o which_o be_v omnipotent_a can_v raise_v the_o dead_a as_o the_o apostle_n intimate_v act_v 2.32_o this_o jesus_n have_v god_n raise_v up_o eph._n 1.19_o 20._o according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o own_o right_a hand_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n this_o great_a work_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n but_o not_o to_o he_o alone_o for_o to_o whosoever_o that_o infinite_a power_n do_v belong_v by_o which_o christ_n be_v raise_v that_o person_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v raise_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o same_o power_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o same_o be_v true_a also_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o must_v according_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n raise_v up_o christ_n from_o the_o dead_a john_n 2.19_o 21._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three-day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n so_o that_o not_o only_a god_n the_o father_n raise_v the_o son_n but_o also_o god_n the_o son_n raise_v himself_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n which_o be_v never_o separate_v after_o his_o incarnation_n either_o from_o his_o body_n or_o his_o soul_n 5._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o he_o arise_v viz._n on_o the_o three_o day_n from_o his_o passion_n this_o be_v foretell_v of_o the_o messiah_n not_o only_o that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v arise_v the_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n it_o be_v typify_v by_o ionas_n as_o we_o show_v before_o our_o saviour_n do_v rise_v proper_o on_o the_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n and_o he_o be_v three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o earth_n synecdochical_o the_o whole_a time_n or_o space_n of_o three_o day_n be_v put_v for_o a_o part_n of_o it_o our_o saviour_n rise_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o his_o resurrection_n be_v so_o eminent_a a_o declaration_n that_o he_o have_v full_o accomplish_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n from_o thence_o the_o sabbath_n be_v change_v to_o that_o day_n act_n 20.7_o and_o upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n when_o the_o disciple_n come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n paul_n preach_v unto_o they_o 1_o cor._n 16.1_o as_o i_o have_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n
give_v because_o that_o jesus_n be_v not_o yet_o glorify_v 6._o he_o ascend_v that_o he_o may_v prepare_v a_o place_n for_o his_o member_n john_n 14.2_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v you_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o heb._n 6.20_o whither_o the_o forerunner_n be_v for_o we_o enter_v even_o jesus_n make_v a_o high_a priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v 5._o we_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o he_o ascend_v viz._n forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n act_v 1.3_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o continue_v so_o long_o we_o may_v suppose_v to_o be_v these_o two_o 1._o to_o confirm_v unto_o his_o disciple_n his_o resurrection_n and_o assure_v they_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o 2._o to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 6._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o ascend_v viz._n bethany_n that_o part_n of_o mount_n olive●_n which_o be_v near_o bethany_n 7._o let_v we_o consider_v how_o he_o ascend_v viz._n while_o he_o bless_v his_o disciple_n he_o be_v part_v from_o they_o and_o while_o they_o behold_v a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o christ_n ascension_n confute_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n he_o be_v not_o real_o and_o corporal_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o be_v not_o there_o for_o he_o be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n 2._o it_o make_v for_o our_o consolation_n it_o may_v serve_v to_o encourage_v we_o to_o go_v to_o god_n in_o all_o our_o necessity_n see_v we_o have_v so_o powerful_a a_o advocate_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n 3._o see_v christ_n be_v ascend_v it_o may_v assure_v we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v his_o member_n we_o shall_v ascend_v also_o the_o head_n be_v ascend_v the_o member_n must_v likewise_o in_o due_a time_n ascend_v john_n 17.24_o father_n i_o will_v that_o those_o also_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v behold_v my_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o ascension_n of_o true_a believer_n as_o a_o thing_n already_o effect_v by_o christ_n ascension_n eph._n 2.6_o and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o and_o make_v we_o sit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v have_v by_o that_o power_n by_o which_o he_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o grave_n quicken_v we_o and_o bestow_v a_o new_a spiritual_a life_n upon_o we_o he_o have_v also_o in_o assure_a hope_n raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o have_v set_v we_o with_o he_o in_o heaven_n for_o he_o sit_v there_o who_o be_v our_o head_n we_o who_o be_v his_o member_n may_v at_o present_v not_o unfit_o be_v say_v to_o fit_v there_o also_o in_o he_o and_o shall_v infallible_o come_v thither_o in_o due_a time_n 4._o it_o may_v take_v away_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n yea_o make_v it_o desirable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n see_v it_o will_v but_o carry_v we_o thither_o whither_o he_o be_v go_v before_o to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o we_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v phil._n 1.23_o that_o though_o he_o be_v in_o a_o strait_a betwixt_o two_o whether_o he_o shall_v desire_v to_o die_v or_o live_v consider_v the_o need_n the_o philippian_n and_o other_o have_v of_o his_o ministry_n yet_o as_o for_o himself_o he_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o depart_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v far_o better_a than_o to_o continue_v in_o this_o world_n have_v thus_o speak_v of_o christ_n ascension_n to_o heaven_n almighty_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n it_o remain_v that_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o article_n viz._n his_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n concern_v this_o article_n we_o shall_v show_v these_o thing_n 1._o that_o the_o promise_a messiah_n be_v to_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n 2._o that_o our_o messiah_n do_v after_o his_o ascension_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 3._o we_o shall_v show_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o phrase_n 4._o what_o improvement_n we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o this_o article_n 1._o the_o promise_a messiah_n be_v to_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v foretell_v psal_n 110.1_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o at_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n that_o those_o word_n be_v speak_v concern_v the_o messiah_n may_v appear_v from_o mat._n 22.44_o and_o act_v 2.34_o 35._o 2._o our_o messiah_n after_o his_o ascension_n do_v sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n mark_v 16.19_o he_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o honour_n never_o promise_v never_o give_v to_o any_o but_o the_o messiah_n heb._n 1.13_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n the_o angel_n indeed_o stand_v about_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n but_o never_o any_o of_o they_o sit_v down_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n but_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o assure_v of_o this_o honour_n that_o before_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n when_o he_o see_v his_o death_n contrive_v and_o his_o cross_n prepare_v he_o express_v his_o assurance_n of_o it_o luke_n 22.69_o hereafter_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o he_o after_o his_o ascension_n 1_o pet._n 3.22_o say_z who_o be_v go_v into_o heaven_n and_o be_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n angel_n and_o authority_n and_o power_n be_v make_v subject_a unto_o he_o 3._o let_v we_o inquire_v what_o be_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o phrase_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n the_o intent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o to_o show_v what_o bodily_a posture_n christ_n be_v in_o but_o what_o dignity_n he_o be_v in_o therefore_o in_o scripture_n christ_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n rom._n 8.34_o 1_o pet._n 3.22_o sometime_o to_o sit_v on_o god_n right_a hand_n as_o mark_v 16.19_o sometime_o to_o stand_v egor_n stand_v sedere_fw-la judicantis_fw-la est_fw-la stare_v vero_fw-la adjuvantis_fw-la g_o egor_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n and_o thus_o he_o appear_v to_o stephen_n act_v 7.55_o 56._o as_o ready_a to_o assist_v he_o as_o ready_a to_o plead_v for_o he_o as_o ready_a to_o receive_v he_o it_o be_v true_a god_n be_v a_o spirit_n have_v no_o material_a part_n no_o right_a hand_n or_o left_a hand_n but_o he_o be_v please_v to_o condescend_v to_o our_o capacity_n and_o to_o speak_v to_o we_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n among_o who_o the_o right_a hand_n be_v the_o most_o honourable_a place_n thus_o 1_o king_n 2.19_o bathsheba_n be_v place_v on_o solomon_n right_a hand_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n must_v therefore_o be_v take_v here_o metaphorical_o not_o proper_o and_o so_o it_o signify_v 1._o the_o great_a honour_n give_v to_o christ_n 2._o the_o great_a power_n and_o dominion_n he_o have_v obtain_v in_o heaven_n it_o import_v his_o kingly_a power_n and_o it_o be_v his_o solemn_a entry_n upon_o his_o regal_a office_n as_o to_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o full_a dominion_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n and_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o blessing_n rev._n 5.12_o therefore_o he_o say_v after_o his_o resurrection_n all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n mat._n 28.18_o and_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o phil._n 2.8_o 9_o to_o he_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v that_o be_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o he_o the_o principal_a end_n of_o this_o regal_a office_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o effectual_a redemption_n and_o actual_a salvation_n of_o all_o those_o who_o god_n have_v give_v he_o and_o whosoever_o or_o whatsoever_o oppose_v their_o salvation_n be_v by_o that_o opposition_n become_v his_o enemy_n and_o see_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n can_v be_v evacuate_v our_o saviour_n must_v exercise_v this_o his_o regal_a power_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n till_o all_o such_o enemy_n be_v subdue_v 1_o cor._n 15.25_o for_o he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o when_o the_o whole_a office_n of_o the_o mediator_n shall_v be_v complete_v and_o fulfil_v
angel_n with_o he_o 3._o a_o throne_n will_v be_v set_v a_o tribunal_n a_o seat_n of_o judgement_n erect_v mat._n 19.28_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n etc._n etc._n rom._n 14.10_o for_o we_o shall_v all_o stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n 4._o there_o will_v be_v a_o personal_a apearance_n of_o all_o man_n before_o this_o tribunal_n he_o shall_v judge_v both_o the_o quick_a that_o be_v those_o find_v alive_a at_o his_o come_n upon_o who_o a_o change_n different_a from_o death_n shall_v pass_v and_o the_o dead_a viz._n that_o die_v before_o 9.27_o before_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a &_o extraordinary_a privilege_n u●uchsafed_v to_o enoch_n and_o elias_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o di●_n but_o according_a to_o god_n ordinary_a and_o usual_a dispensation_n it_o be_v appoint_v to_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v heb._n 9.27_o act_v 10.42_o 5._o the_o action_n and_o work_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v judge_v shall_v then_o be_v manifest_v 1_o cor._n 4.5_o he_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n eccles_n 12.24_o god_n will_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a the_o book_n will_v then_o be_v open_v viz._n 1._o the_o book_n of_o god_n omniscience_n and_o remembrance_n mal._n 3.16_o and_o the_o book_n of_o conscience_n jer._n 17.1_o 6._o the_o statute_n shall_v be_v produce_v upon_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v try_v and_o find_v guilty_a or_o not-guilty_a and_o they_o be_v two_o 1._o the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v on_o man_n heart_n at_o his_o creation_n which_o require_v perfect_a obedience_n and_o which_o god_n give_v man_n power_n at_o first_o to_o perform_v 2._o the_o law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n now_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v find_v guilty_a upon_o the_o first_o statute_n woe_n to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v cast_v by_o the_o second_o also_o to_o prevent_v this_o let_v we_o set_v ourselves_o serious_o to_o repent_v of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n lie_v hold_v on_o christ_n and_o take_v he_o for_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o faithful_o endeavour_v to_o conform_v ourselves_o unto_o his_o precept_n 7._o the_o evidence_n or_o witness_n that_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o prove_v the_o indictment_n against_o all_o impenitent_a sinner_n especial_o such_o as_o live_v under_o the_o gospel_n be_v 1._o god_n the_o father_n who_o mercy_n be_v by_o they_o so_o wretched_o slight_v 2._o god_n the_o son_n who_o blood_n they_o trample_v under_o their_o foot_n 3._o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o bless_a motion_n they_o so_o often_o resist_v 4._o all_o faithful_a minister_n who_o strive_v with_o all_o affectionateness_n to_o draw_v they_o to_o christ_n 5._o all_o good_a parent_n governor_n master_n or_o faithful_a christia●_n friend_n among_o who_o they_o live_v who_o give_v they_o faithful_a counsel_n for_o the_o welfare_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o a_o good_a example_n 6._o all_o their_o sinful_a companion_n who_o be_v partaker_n with_o they_o in_o their_o sin_n 7._o their_o own_o conscience_n which_o be_v a_o thousand_o witness_n 8._o the_o judge_n will_v pronounce_v sentence_n upon_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o this_o will_v be_v twofold_a 1._o of_o absolution_n 2_o of_o condemnation_n 1._o of_o absolution_n to_o the_o righteous_a in_o these_o word_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o matth._n 25.34_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v first_o be_v acquit_v before_o the_o wicked_a be_v condemn_v that_o they_o may_v afterward_o join_v with_o christ_n in_o judge_v the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 6.2_o there_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o saint_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o authoritative_o but_o by_o way_n of_o approbation_n approve_v and_o magnify_v christ_n righteous_a sentence_n on_o devil_n and_o wicked_a man_n and_o give_v some_o such_o approbation_n probable_o as_o that_o of_o the_o angel_n rev._n 16.5_o thou_o be_v righteous_a o_o lord_n which_o art_n and_o waste_v and_o shall_v be_v because_o thou_o have_v thus_o judge_v thus_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v judge_n but_o some_o of_o they_o more_o eminent_o as_o assessor_n with_o christ_n as_o be_v intimate_v concern_v the_o apostle_n matth._n 19.28_o you_o shall_v sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 2._o of_o condemnation_n upon_o the_o wicked_a matth._n 25.41_o then_o shall_v he_o say_v to_o they_o on_o his_o left_a hand_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n 9_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o dispose_v of_o the_o person_n judge_v to_o their_o everlasting_a state_n according_a to_o that_o sentence_n matth._n 25.46_o and_o these_o shall_v go_v away_o into_o everlasting_a punishment_n but_o the_o righteous_a into_o life_n eternal_a the_o sentence_n be_v irrevocable_a no_o reprieve_n to_o be_v expect_v then_o there_o will_v be_v a_o everlasting_a separation_n between_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a 4._o what_o will_v be_v the_o consequent_n of_o this_o judgement_n 1._o christ_n resign_v up_o his_o kingdom_n not_o his_o essential_a kingdom_n but_o that_o which_o he_o administer_v as_o mediator_n to_o the_o father_n 1_o cor._n 15.24_o 2._o the_o burn_a of_o the_o world_n of_o which_o we_o read_v 2_o pet._n 3.12_o by_o which_o fire_n some_o think_v the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v utter_o consume_v but_o renew_v clarify_a and_o refine_a i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o application_n which_o i_o shall_v reduce_v to_o three_o head_n this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n may_v be_v useful_a 1._o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n to_o all_o 2._o by_o way_n of_o consolation_n to_o the_o righteous_a 3._o by_o way_n of_o terror_n to_o the_o wicked_a 1._o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n to_o all_o 1._o let_v we_o all_o labour_n to_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v in_o ourselves_o a_o belief_n of_o this_o great_a article_n there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n more_o certain_a in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o more_o clear_a and_o fundamental_a than_o this_o of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n heb._n 6.2_o 2._o let_v we_o frequent_o meditate_v on_o it_o let_v we_o often_o think_v on_o those_o awaken_n place_n 2_o thes_n 1.7.8_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n 1_o thes_n 4.16_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n with_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o judas_n verse_n 14.15_o and_o enoch_n also_o the_o seven_o from_o adam_n prophesy_v of_o these_o say_v behold_v the_o lord_n come_v with_o ten_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n to_o execute_v judgement_n upon_o all_o and_o to_o convince_v all_o that_o be_v ungodly_a among_o they_o of_o all_o their_o ungodly_a deed_n which_o they_o have_v ungodly_a commit_v and_o of_o all_o their_o hard_a speech_n which_o ungodly_a sinner_n have_v speak_v against_o he_o to_o think_v often_o of_o this_o great_a day_n may_v prevent_v many_o a_o sin_n psal_n 58.11_o very_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n for_o the_o righteous_a and_o doubtless_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o judge_v the_o earth_n 3._o let_v we_o all_o solemn_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o this_o great_a trial_n by_o set_v up_o a_o judgement_n seat_n in_o our_o own_o soul_n beforehand_o 1._o let_v we_o serious_o examine_v our_o state_n towards_o god_n every_o one_o be_v either_o a_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o perdition_n or_o a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o a_o heir_n of_o heaven_n let_v we_o examine_v whether_o we_o be_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o we_o keep_v a_o great_a stir_n about_o sect_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v but_o two_o great_a sect_n or_o party_n in_o the_o world_n and_o those_o be_v either_o such_o as_o be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n or_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n let_v we_o therefore_o serious_o consider_v to_o which_o of_o these_o two_o we_o do_v belong_v let_v we_o consider_v what_o our_o present_a state_n be_v have_v we_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o convert_a person_n upon_o we_o or_o no_o have_v the_o work_n of_o sound_a conversion_n ever_o pass_v upon_o we_o or_o no_o let_v we_o remember_v
unto_o holiness_n 2_o tim._n 2.19_o let_v every_o one_o that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n the_o end_n of_o christ_n gather_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v his_o people_n be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o zealous_a of_o good_a work_n thus_o moses_n speak_v of_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n deut._n 7.6_o thou_o be_v a_o holy_a people_n unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n that_o be_v they_o be_v so_o by_o destination_n and_o engagement_n though_o many_o of_o they_o be_v not_o real_o so●_n 2._o the_o church_n may_v be_v call_v holy_a because_o it_o train_v up_o people_n in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n and_o godliness_n 3._o it_o may_v be_v call_v holy_a in_o respect_n though_o not_o of_o the_o great_a yet_o of_o the_o better_a part_n of_o it_o who_o god_n have_v sanctify_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n the_o other_o attribute_n of_o the_o church_n be_v catholic_n catholic_n as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n so_o be_v it_o not_o ancient_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o insert_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n it_o signify_v general_n or_o universal_a now_o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o place_n it_o be_v not_o now_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o narrow_a bound_n of_o judea_n but_o diffuse_v through_o the_o world_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o person_n all_o sort_n of_o person_n be_v promiscuous_o call_v to_o faith_n in_o christ_n neither_o jew_n nor_o gentile_a neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a be_v exclude_v gal._n 3.28_o 3._o in_o respect_n of_o time_n it_o comprehend_v all_o the_o faithful_a that_o have_v be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n ever_o since_o the_o give_n of_o the_o first_o promise_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o to_o our_o saviour_n day_n and_o since_o then_o to_o the_o age_n in_o which_o we_o live_v and_o be_v to_o contitinue_v from_o hence_o by_o a_o continual_a accession_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n nay_o it_o do_v not_o only_o include_v that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o militant_a on_o earth_n but_o that_o also_o which_o be_v triumphant_a in_o heaven_n both_o they_o with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o they_o make_v one_o body_n mystical_a whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o all_o together_o together_o with_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n which_o live_v under_o the_o law_n do_v make_v up_o that_o one_o glorious_a church_n which_o be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o general_a assembly_n the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o heaven_n heb._n 12.23_o catholic_n then_o the_o church_n may_v be_v call_v in_o regard_n of_o extent_n whether_o we_o consider_v time_n place_n or_o person_n 4._o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n because_o it_o maintain_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n quae_fw-la semper_fw-la quae_fw-la ubique_fw-la quae_fw-la abomnibus_fw-la credita_fw-la est_fw-la 3_o adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la c._n 3_o as_o lirinensis_n do_v say_v which_o have_v always_o and_o in_o all_o place_n by_o all_o sort_n of_o real_a christian_n be_v receive_v as_o orthodox_n catholic_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v the_o same_o with_o orthodox_n and_o a_o catholic_n christian_n the_o same_o with_o a_o true_a professor_n a_o private_a christian_a may_v be_v call_v catholic_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o thus_o the_o father_n of_o the_o pure_a time_n make_v use_v of_o this_o word_n catholic_n to_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o heretic_n according_a to_o that_o famous_a say_n of_o pacianus_n christianus_n mihi_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la catholicus_n cognomen_fw-la christian_n say_v he_o be_v my_o name_n and_o catholic_n my_o surname_n by_o the_o one_o i_o be_o know_v from_o infidel_n by_o the_o other_o from_o heretic_n and_o so_o long_o as_o the_o main_a body_n of_o christian_n retain_v the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n and_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n it_o serve_v fit_o for_o a_o distinctive_a mark_n to_o know_v a_o orthodox_n professor_n from_o a_o heretical_a but_o when_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v once_o tear_v in_o piece_n and_o every_o lead_a faction_n will_v be_v think_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n also_o and_o thus_o our_o great_a master_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v appropriate_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n account_v all_o man_n heretic_n that_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o do_v not_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o in_o their_o error_n and_o then_o they_o defend_v themselves_o by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n from_o have_v deal_v unjust_o with_o their_o fellow_n christian_n man_n every_o way_n more_o orthodox_n than_o themselves_o but_o let_v they_o talk_v what_o they_o will_v the_o church_n which_o be_v true_o catholic_n contain_v within_o it_o all_o those_o congregation_n which_o be_v true_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o who_o be_v true_a christian_n belong_v to_o it_o so_o that_o whosoever_o be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o which_o ordinary_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 3._o i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v consider_v either_o as_o militant_a or_o triumphant_a the_o church_n militant_a be_v that_o company_n of_o christian_n here_o on_o earth_n who_o be_v in_o warfare_n war_a against_o satan_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n 2._o the_o church_n triumphant_a be_v those_o saint_n who_o have_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v those_o adversary_n do_v now_o reign_v and_o triumph_v in_o heaven_n this_o distinction_n be_v found_v upon_o ephes_n 3.14_o 15._o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a family_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v name_v the_o family_n in_o heaven_n be_v the_o church_n triumphant_a the_o family_n on_o earth_n the_o church_n militant_a of_o which_o the_o apostle_n himself_o be_v one_o when_o he_o say_v 2_o tim._n 4.7_o i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n the_o triumphant_a we_o may_v read_v of_o rev._n 7.9_o after_o this_o i_o behold_v and_o lo_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o before_o the_o lamb_n clothe_v with_o white_a robe_n and_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n have_v thus_o premise_v this_o distinction_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a i_o come_v now_o to_o speak_v particular_o of_o the_o church_n militant_a 1._o then_o we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o churcrh_fw-mi militant_a here_o on_o earth_n consist_v partly_o of_o such_o as_o be_v true_o of_o it_o partly_o of_o such_o as_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o outward_a profession_n belong_v to_o it_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v rev._n 2.9_o of_o some_o who_o profess_v themselves_o jew_n i_o know_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o they_o that_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n and_o be_v not_o but_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o some_o who_o profess_v themselves_o christian_n that_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o be_v such_o in_o truth_n and_o reality_n for_o profane_a person_n and_o hypocrite_n be_v rather_o in_o the_o church_n than_o of_o it_o the_o militant_a church_n be_v either_o visible_a or_o invisible_a the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o visible_a company_n of_o people_n profess_v the_o gospel_n whether_o they_o do_v it_o in_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n or_o no._n it_o do_v consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o net_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n which_o gather_v of_o every_o kind_n etc._n etc._n matth._n 13.47_o and_o to_o a_o field_n wherein_o be_v both_o wheat_n and_o tare_n matth._n 13.24_o and_o to_o a_o great_a house_n wherein_o be_v vessel_n of_o several_a sort_n some_o to_o honour_n some_o to_o dishonour_n 2_o tim._n 2.20_o the_o invisible_a church_n consist_v of_o such_o as_o true_o be_v what_o they_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v it_o be_v call_v invisible_a because_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n they_o can_v see_v the_o profession_n but_o whether_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o heart_n or_o no_o they_o can_v see_v the_o invisible_a church_n therefore_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o visible_a and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o difference_n between_o they_o than_o between_o the_o whole_a and_o a_o part_n 3._o the_o church_n militant_a be_v distinguish_v into_o particular_a and_o universal_a a_o particular_a
church_n be_v a_o company_n profess_v the_o faith_n in_o some_o particular_a place_n thus_o we_o read_v of_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n rev._n 1.7_o that_o be_v church_n that_o be_v in_o seven_o city_n in_o asia_n as_o appear_v verse_n 11._o yea_o we_o read_v of_o church_n in_o particular_a house_n as_o in_o the_o house_n of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n rom._n 16.5_o and_o in_o the_o h●use_n of_o nymphas_n col._n 4.15_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n that_o profess_v faith_n in_o christ_n throughout_o the_o world_n all_o christian_n as_o christian_n who_o profess_v and_o hold_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v the_o catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o congregation_n consist_v of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o christian_a people_n associate_v for_o personal_a communion_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a live_n be_v particular_a true_a church_n though_o they_o may_v also_o much_o differ_v in_o degree_n of_o purity_n this_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o upon_o earth_n otherwise_o as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o universal_a church_n comprehend_v both_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o absurd_o affect_v to_o be_v call_v the_o catholic_n church_n yea_o roman_a catholic_n cathotholick_n import_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o roman_a but_o a_o particular_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o indeed_o a_o eminent_a part_n yet_o but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n but_o now_o she_o be_v so_o degenerate_a and_o corrupt_a that_o she_o be_v term_v babylon_n rev._n 1.7_o and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v command_v to_o come_v out_o of_o she_o rev._n 18.4_o and_o i_o hear_v another_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n worship_v image_n do_v it_o pray_v to_o saint_n do_v it_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a do_v it_o perform_v its_o divine_a worship_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n do_v it_o withhold_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n be_v this_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o suppose_v the_o romanist_n themselves_o will_v not_o assert_v it_o we_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o we_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n that_o be_v of_o old_a deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o we_o have_v not_o depart_v far_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o they_o have_v depart_v from_o this_o faith_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n yet_o the_o papist_n notwithstanding_o use_v to_o ask_v we_o where_o be_v your_o religion_n before_o luther_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v wherever_o there_o be_v any_o true_a and_o real_a christian_n before_o luther_n among_o they_o be_v our_o church_n this_o be_v the_o church_n we_o profess_v ourselves_o of_o and_o sure_o there_o be_v many_o more_o more_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o world_n than_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o cummunion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v true_a christianity_n that_o make_v any_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v not_o every_o inferior_a truth_n that_o do_v so_o neither_o do_v every_o error_n cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o it_o that_o church_n then_o which_o comprehend_v all_o the_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n we_o be_v of_o before_o luther_n we_o do_v not_o confine_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n protestant_n we_o hold_v be_v the_o sound_a part_n of_o this_o church_n but_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n all_o within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v true_a christian_n we_o allow_v to_o be_v of_o this_o church_n and_o the_o same_o we_o say_v of_o the_o greek_n armenian_n ethiopian_n abyssine_n or_o any_o other_o profess_v christianity_n and_o though_o the_o papist_n talk_v much_o of_o antiquity_n if_o they_o will_v try_v whether_o their_o doctrine_n or_o we_o be_v the_o sound_a we_o be_v willing_a to_o appeal_v to_o antiquity_n let_v the_o elder_a way_n of_o religion_n carry_v it_o we_o be_v of_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v not_o less_o than_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n old_a for_o we_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o they_o have_v shameful_o depart_v from_o but_o the_o papist_n far_a ask_v we_o if_o their_o church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n what_o be_v become_v of_o our_o forefather_n who_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n we_o answer_v they_o may_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n and_o yet_o be_v free_a from_o many_o of_o the_o gross_a error_n in_o it_o and_o god_n may_v gracious_o pass_v by_o their_o ignorance_n and_o weakness_n who_o have_v not_o so_o great_a a_o light_n as_o we_o have_v to_o show_v they_o the_o error_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o do_v therefore_o in_o charity_n think_v that_o some_o of_o our_o ancestor_n former_o and_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n who_o hold_v and_o believe_v the_o main_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o do_v live_v good_a life_n according_a to_o their_o knowledge_n may_v be_v save_v but_o not_o by_o their_o popery_n but_o by_o their_o christianity_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o i_o come_v now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v these_o three_o 1._o true_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n preach_v 2._o right_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o as_o those_o be_v more_o or_o less_o pure_o administer_v so_o the_o church_n be_v more_o or_o less_o pure_a 3._o obedience_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n discipline_n indeed_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n yet_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o very_o be_v but_o to_o the_o well_o be_v of_o it_o but_o here_o a_o question_n may_v arise_v how_o be_v the_o church_n say_v not_o to_o err_v answ_n 1._o the_o whole_a do_v not_o err_v though_o some_o particular_a church_n may_v 2._o the_o church_n do_v not_o err_v universal_o though_o in_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n it_o may_v which_o be_v not_o essential_a or_o fundamental_a to_o salvation_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o this_o article_n 1._o this_o show_v we_o the_o admirable_a privilege_n of_o every_o true_o regenerate_v sanctify_a person_n who_o be_v most_o certain_o a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n all_o true_a christian_n be_v catholic_n in_o a_o better_a sense_n than_o the_o romanist_n use_v that_o word_n but_o whosoever_o be_v wicked_a and_o profane_a let_v they_o talk_v they_o be_v for_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_n church_n 2._o all_o that_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n shall_v keep_v close_o to_o the_o catholic_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n which_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o they_o shall_v labour_v for_o a_o catholic_n spirit_n and_o catholic_n affection_n which_o may_v incline_v they_o 1._o to_o love_v all_o christian_n as_o christian_n for_o christ_n sake_n though_o they_o may_v differ_v from_o they_o in_o some_o particular_n a_o true_a catholic_n spirit_n be_v for_o union_n among_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 2._o to_o compassionate_v all_o real_a christian_n in_o their_o suffering_n and_o affliction_n rom._n 12.15_o 16._o 3._o to_o pray_v earnest_o for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o to_o be_v solicitous_a and_o much_o concern_v touch_v the_o welfare_n thereof_o and_o all_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n chhurch_n may_v comfort_v themselves_o with_o this_o consideration_n that_o they_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o paayer_n of_o this_o catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n now_o militant_a upon_o the_o earth_n sect_n iii_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n saint_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n concern_v this_o article_n we_o shall_v inquire_v 1._o who_o may_v true_o be_v call_v saint_n and_o wherein_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o saintship_n do_v consist_v and_o how_o the_o saint_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o 2._o who_o be_v those_o person_n with_o who_o these_o saint_n have_v communion_n for_o the_o first_o 1._o by_o the_o tenure_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o those_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o saint_n who_o be_v call_v with_o a_o holy_a call_n have_v not_o be_v disobedient_a to_o it_o but_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o holy_a faith_n unite_n they_o to_o
christ_n and_o be_v purify_v thereby_o and_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o do_v lead_v a_o holy_a life_n daily_o endeavour_v to_o perfect_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n such_o person_n be_v real_o and_o true_o saint_n and_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o proper_a subject_n of_o this_o article_n 2._o who_o be_v those_o person_n with_o who_o these_o saint_n have_v communion_n and_o in_o what_o do_v this_o their_o communion_n consist_v 1._o the_o saint_n of_o god_n live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o god_n the_o father_n pray_v unto_o he_o and_o praise_v of_o he_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o exercise_v such_o act_n of_o worship_n as_o he_o require_v 1_o john_n 1.3_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v declare_v we_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o also_o may_v have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n david_n affectionate_o express_v his_o desire_n of_o this_o communion_n psal_n 42.1_o as_o the_o heart_n pant_v after_o the_o water-brook_n so_o pant_v my_o soul_n after_o thou_o o_o god_n 2._o they_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n the_o son_n 1_o cor._n 1.9_o god_n have_v call_v we_o to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o son_n for_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n they_o be_v thereby_o make_v partaker_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o receive_v spiritual_a life_n and_o grace_n from_o he_o for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o their_o nature_n and_o sincere_o endeavour_v after_o conformity_n unto_o he_o 3._o they_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o apostle_n have_v two_o way_n assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n hereof_o one_o rhetorical_o by_o a_o seem_a doubt_n if_o there_o be_v any_o fellowship_n of_o the_o spirit_n phil._n 2.1_o the_o other_o direct_o pray_v devout_o for_o it_o 2_o cor._n 13.14_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v with_o you_o all_o amen_n this_o be_v the_o communion_n which_o the_o saint_n enjoy_v with_o the_o three_o bless_a person_n in_o the_o trinity_n john_n 14.23_o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o make_v our_o abode_n with_o he_o and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v be_v want_v where_o these_o two_o be_v inhabit_v for_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n inhabit_v in_o the_o saint_n for_o know_v you_o not_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o 1_o cor._n 3.16_o 4._o the_o saint_n of_o god_n live_v here_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n for_o our_o good_a heb._n 1.14_o they_o rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n they_o do_v many_o good_a office_n for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n which_o possible_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_o sensible_a of_o and_o this_o their_o ministry_n be_v exercise_v as_o it_o be_v probable_a about_o the_o ordinary_a concernment_n of_o our_o life_n and_o not_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n only_o 5._o the_o saint_n of_o god_n live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n and_o admit_v to_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n the_o godly_a on_o earth_n do_v in_o heart_n and_o affection_n converse_v with_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o it_o be_v probable_a the_o saint_n triumphant_a wish_n to_o the_o saint_n militant_a the_o happiness_n they_o enjoy_v and_o possible_o pray_v for_o they_o in_o general_a though_o their_o particular_a case_n they_o may_v not_o know_v but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v as_o the_o papist_n fond_o conceive_v that_o they_o interpose_v their_o merit_n for_o we_o and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o be_v to_o invocate_v they_o or_o perform_v any_o religious_a worship_n towards_o they_o these_o be_v but_o invention_n of_o man_n brain_n want_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 6._o the_o saint_n of_o god_n live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o saint_n live_v in_o the_o same_o church_n if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n say_v the_o apostle_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o 1_o john_n 1.7_o and_o another_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 12.13_o by_o one_o spirit_n they_o be_v be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n so_o that_o they_o have_v communion_n one_o with_o another_o in_o these_o offering_n 1._o they_o all_o join_v together_o in_o the_o use_n of_o and_o have_v benefit_n by_o the_o same_o ordinance_n and_o all_o partake_v of_o the_o same_o promise_n be_v all_o ingraff_v into_o the_o same_o stock_n and_o receive_v life_n from_o the_o same_o root_n 2._o according_a to_o their_o place_n and_o call_v they_o teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o 3._o they_o endeavour_v to_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o to_o mind_v the_o same_o thing_n 3.13_o thing_n act_n 3.16_o heb._n 3.13_o 4._o they_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o ephes_n 6.18_o and_o jam._n 5.16_o confess_v your_o fault_n one_o to_o another_o and_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o that_o you_o may_v be_v heal_v the_o effectual_a fervent_a prayer_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n avail_v much_o 5._o they_o comfort_n and_o encourage_v one_o another_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n 6._o in_o respect_n of_o temporal_a thing_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o succour_v relieve_v and_o help_v one_o another_o according_a to_o their_o ability_n have_v thus_o open_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o article_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o instruction_n we_o shall_v learn_v from_o it_o 1._o if_o we_o believe_v this_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o have_v be_v before_o describe_v then_o let_v we_o serious_o consider_v whether_o we_o have_v a_o part_n and_o share_v in_o it_o or_o no._n there_o be_v many_o instead_o of_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o with_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o satan_n and_o instead_o of_o communion_n with_o saint_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o ungodly_a and_o wicked_a and_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o iniquity_n in_o swear_v swagger_a drink_v revel_a and_o scoff_v at_o saint_n and_o saintship_n and_o this_o they_o account_v and_o call_v good_a fellowship_n but_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v himself_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 1_o john_n 1.5_o 6_o 7._o that_o god_n be_v light_n and_o in_o he_o there_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v fellowship_n with_o he_o and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o lie_v and_o do_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o etc._n etc._n 2._o if_o we_o have_v a_o share_n and_o part_n in_o this_o communion_n it_o shall_v inflame_v our_o heart_n with_o a_o ardent_a love_n to_o all_o that_o be_v within_o this_o communion_n if_o similitude_n of_o shape_n or_o feature_n will_v beget_v a_o kindness_n if_o congruity_n of_o manner_n and_o disposition_n will_v unite_v affection_n what_o great_a love_n shall_v there_o be_v among_o all_o the_o saint_n who_o have_v the_o same_o image_n of_o god_n stamp_v upon_o they_o and_o be_v act_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n sure_o all_o that_o be_v true_a member_n of_o christ_n shall_v hearty_o desire_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o welfare_n of_o all_o their_o fellow-member_n and_o shall_v have_v their_o heart_n touch_v with_o the_o misery_n that_o befall_v either_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o general_a or_o the_o particular_a member_n thereof_o see_v amos_n 6.6_o 3._o a_o belief_n of_o this_o article_n shall_v teach_v we_o that_o as_o we_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o in_o our_o several_a place_n and_o according_a to_o our_o ability_n so_o especial_o to_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n sect_n iv_o of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n sin_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n remission_n or_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o privilege_n that_o belong_v to_o they_o who_o be_v true_a member_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_n church_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o clear_o explain_v this_o doctrine_n we_o shall_v consider_v 1._o what_o sin_n be_v 2._o what_o be_v the_o kind_n of_o it_o 3._o what_o be_v the_o wage_n due_a to_o it_o 4._o by_o who_o sin_n be_v forgive_v 5._o upon_o what_o account_n they_o be_v forgive_v 6._o what_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n do_v contain_v in_o it_o
7._o what_o be_v require_v of_o they_o who_o may_v expect_v this_o great_a privilege_n 1._o we_o shall_v consider_v what_o sin_n be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o foul_a nature_n of_o it_o that_o so_o we_o may_v the_o better_a estimate_n the_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n in_o pardon_v of_o it_o the_o apostle_n show_v we_o 1_o john_n 3.4_o that_o sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o action_n of_o man_n and_o any_o deviation_n from_o that_o rule_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o bring_v we_o under_o guilt_n 2._o let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o kind_n of_o sin_n sin_n be_v either_o original_a or_o actual_a 1._o original_a sin_n be_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o article_n describe_v to_o be_v a_o fault_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o man_n that_o natural_o be_v engender_v of_o the_o offspring_n of_o adam_n whereby_o man_n be_v very_o far_o go_v from_o original_a righteousness_n and_o incline_v unto_o evil_n in_o which_o description_n three_o thing_n may_v be_v observe_v 1._o original_a sin_n be_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o man_n descend_v from_o the_o loin_n of_o adam_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o departure_n from_o that_o original_a righteousness_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n enrich_v adam_n and_o ourselves_o in_o he_o 3._o it_o be_v a_o inclination_n to_o evil_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a race_n and_o offsping_a of_o adam_n who_o be_v then_o radical_o seminal_o and_o potential_o in_o his_o loin_n be_v infect_v with_o this_o contagion_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v of_o levi_n that_o he_o pay_v tithe_n in_o abraham_n to_o melchisedec_n heb._n 7.9_o 10._o for_o he_o be_v then_o in_o the_o loin_n of_o his_o father_n abraham_n when_o melchisedec_n meet_v he_o so_o all_o we_o and_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n be_v in_o adam_n when_o he_o lose_v himself_o and_o that_o we_o be_v all_o from_o the_o womb_n taint_v with_o this_o original_a corruption_n becan_n corruption_n unum_n illud_fw-la peccatum_fw-la fons_fw-la est_fw-la aliorum_fw-la becan_n and_o depravation_n of_o nature_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a from_o these_o scripture_n psal_n 51.5_o behold_v i_o be_v shape_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n do_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o ephes_n 2.3_o and_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n even_o as_o other_o and_o that_o even_a infant_n themselves_o be_v taint_v with_o this_o original_a corruption_n may_v appear_v from_o this_o that_o they_o be_v liable_a to_o death_n now_o death_n be_v a_o wage_n no_o way_n due_a to_o infant_n for_o actual_a sin_n for_o actual_o as_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o offend_v therefore_o there_o must_v need_n be_v in_o they_o some_o original_a guilt_n some_o birth-sin_n which_o make_v they_o liable_a to_o death_n 2._o actual_a sin_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o original_n be_v any_o action_n or_o commission_n or_o any_o omission_n repugnant_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 3._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o wage_n of_o sin_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o rom._n 6._o last_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n the_o wage_n due_a reward_n and_o fruit_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n but_o life_n eternal_a be_v the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n not_o as_o its_o wage_n but_o as_o a_o gift_n free_o give_v by_o god_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ_n every_o sin_n therefore_o be_v a_o deviation_n from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n bring_v we_o under_o guilt_n and_o guilt_n make_v we_o liable_a to_o suffer_v the_o punishment_n which_o be_v due_a to_o our_o sin_n and_o proportional_a to_o our_o offence_n and_o our_o offence_n be_v augment_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n against_o who_o they_o be_v commit_v and_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v very_o heinous_a and_o bound_v we_o over_o to_o suffer_v eternal_a punishment_n except_o we_o obtain_v a_o pardon_n and_o our_o sin_n be_v remit_v 4._o let_v we_o consider_v by_o who_o sin_n be_v remit_v 1._o man_n may_v forgive_v offence_n commit_v against_o they_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o concern_v they_o luke_n 17.3_o 4._o if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o rebuke_v he_o and_o if_o he_o repent_v forgive_v he_o and_o if_o he_o trespass_n against_o thou_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n and_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n turn_v again_o to_o thou_o say_v i_o repent_v thou_o shall_v forgive_v he_o but_o as_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o god_n law_n so_o god_n only_o can_v forgive_v it_o 2._o it_o be_v god_n the_o father_n prerogative_n to_o forgive_v sin_n isaiah_n 43.25_o i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o blot_v out_o thy_o transgression_n for_o my_o own_o sake_n and_o will_v not_o remember_v thy_o sin_n 3._o god_n communicate_v this_o power_n to_o his_o son_n while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n as_o part_v of_o that_o power_n that_o be_v give_v he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n mark_v 2.5_o and_o 7._o when_o jesus_n see_v their_o faith_n he_o say_v unto_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o the_o scribe_n ask_v who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o their_o position_n be_v good_a that_o god_n only_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o their_o supposition_n false_a that_o christ_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o not_o god_n as_o well_o as_o man._n 4._o minister_n may_v forgive_v sin_n not_o authoritative_o but_o ministerial_o and_o declarative_o they_o preach_v remission_n in_o christ_n name_n &_o declare_v what_o person_n they_o must_v be_v and_o what_o they_o must_v do_v who_o shall_v obtain_v it_o 5._o let_v we_o consider_v upon_o what_o account_n and_o for_o who_o sake_n sin_n be_v forgive_v the_o external_a impulsive_a cause_n incline_v god_n to_o pardon_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o trespass_n be_v the_o respect_n he_o have_v to_o the_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o rom._n 3.24_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o by_o the_o internal_a impulsive_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o which_o he_o be_v first_o move_v to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o then_o through_o the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o external_a move_n or_o impulsive_a cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mercy_n the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o forgiveness_n mat._n 26.28_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n ephes_n 1.7_o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n act_v 13.38_o 39_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o therefore_o man_n and_o brethren_n that_o through_o this_o man_n be_v preach_v unto_o you_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o by_o he_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v from_o all_o thing_n from_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n 1_o john_n 1.7_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n rev._n 1.5_o unto_o he_o that_o love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n god_n be_v indeed_o say_v to_o remit_v our_o sin_n but_o never_o to_o remit_v the_o price_n without_o which_o we_o have_v never_o be_v redeem_v the_o law_n promise_v life_n but_o upon_o perfect_a absolute_a uninterrupted_a obedience_n and_o the_o voice_n thereof_o be_v do_v this_o and_o live_v but_o this_o we_o fail_v in_o we_o need_v therefore_o the_o interposition_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o the_o atonement_n make_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n clear_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o whatsoever_o virtue_n be_v in_o they_o do_v operate_v through_o his_o death_n alone_o as_o he_o be_v a_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n in_o god_n decree_n so_o all_o atonement_n which_o be_v ever_o make_v be_v only_o effectual_a through_o his_o blood_n so_o that_o no_o sin_n be_v ever_o forgive_v but_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n and_o god_n be_v never_o reconcile_v to_o any_o sinner_n but_o by_o intuition_n of_o that_o propitiation_n yet_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v never_o clear_o reveal_v and_o public_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n till_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o flesh_n 6._o let_v we_o consider_v what_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n do_v import_v and_o contain_v in_o it_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n do_v comprehend_v in_o it_o reconciliation_n of_o a_o offend_a god_n and_o a_o
resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a john_n 6.39_o and_o this_o be_v the_o father_n will_n which_o have_v send_v i_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o shall_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n verse_n 40._o and_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n 1_o thes_n 4.14_o for_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o jesus_n die_v and_z rise_v again_o even_o so_o they_o also_o which_o sleep_n in_o jesus_n will_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o verse_n 15._o for_o this_o we_o say_v unto_o you_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o prevent_v they_o which_o be_v asleep_a verse_n 16._o for_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n sholl_a rise_v first_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o improvement_n we_o shall_v make_v of_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o let_v we_o take_v heed_n of_o err_v about_o this_o doctrine_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o leven_a of_o the_o sadducee_n who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n act_v 23.8_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o exceed_o err_v about_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o those_o that_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o resurrection_n but_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a viz._n that_o of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o error_n of_o hymenaeus_n and_o philetus_n 2_o tim._n 2.17_o 18._o they_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o resurrection_n but_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o pass_v upon_o a_o man_n in_o this_o life_n now_o this_o spiritual_a resurrection_n be_v limit_v only_o to_o true_a believer_n but_o the_o corporal_n belong_v to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n of_o who_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 5.29_o they_o shall_v all_o come_v forth_o some_o to_o life_n and_o some_o to_o damnation_n which_o can_v possible_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o spiritual_a resurrection_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v another_o beside_o that_o 2._o those_o that_o say_v the_o same_o numerical_a body_n that_o die_v shall_v not_o rise_v again_o but_o some_o new_a airy_a body_n not_o flesh_n and_o blood_n bone_n and_o sinew_n as_o we_o be_v make_v up_o of_o but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a error_n for_o 1._o if_o the_o same_o body_n do_v not_o arise_v then_o it_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n but_o a_o new_a creation_n i_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a they_o shall_v arise_v with_o every_o parcel_n and_o particle_n of_o flesh_n they_o ever_o have_v or_o have_v when_o they_o die_v but_o they_o shall_v rise_v with_o so_o much_o of_o their_o body_n as_o shall_v make_v they_o the_o same_o numerical_a body_n that_o die_v as_o a_o man_n in_o the_o war_n if_o he_o lose_v a_o arm_n or_o a_o leg_n yet_o we_o say_v and_o say_v true_o he_o be_v the_o same_o man_n still_o that_o he_o be_v before_o so_o the_o dead_a shall_v rise_v with_o so_o much_o of_o their_o body_n as_o shall_v when_o reunite_v to_o their_o soul_n make_v they_o the_o same_o person_n they_o be_v before_o 2._o our_o saviour_n say_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v come_v forth_o that_o be_v sure_o the_o same_o body_n that_o lay_v there_o and_o not_o other_o body_n for_o they_o rev._n 20.13_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sea_n shall_v render_v up_o its_o dead_a sure_o not_o new_a body_n but_o the_o old_a body_n that_o be_v bury_v there_o 3._o the_o body_n of_o true_a believer_n as_o well_o as_o their_o soul_n be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o thereby_o make_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o 1_o cor._n 6.19_o and_o can_v you_o think_v christ_n will_v lose_v any_o one_o of_o his_o member_n he_o assure_v we_o to_o the_o contrary_a john_n 6.39_o r_o 40._o 4._o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o this_o corruptible_a this_o mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o immortality_n 1_o cor._n 15.53_o therefore_o the_o same_o body_n that_o be_v now_o mortal_a and_o must_v die_v shall_v be_v raise_v and_o indeed_o the_o apostle_n plain_o show_v all_o along_o in_o that_o excellent_a discourse_n of_o the_o resurrection_n that_o he_o intend_v that_o the_o same_o body_n that_o die_v shall_v rise_v again_o 5._o it_o seem_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o viz._n that_o the_o same_o numerical_a body_n that_o be_v the_o soul_n instrument_n either_o in_o good_a or_o evil_a action_n either_o in_o work_n of_o righteousness_n or_o sin_n shall_v partake_v with_o the_o soul_n also_o in_o its_o reward_n or_o punishment_n shall_v they_o that_o beat_v down_o their_o body_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o subjection_n or_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o their_o body_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n be_v reward_v in_o other_o body_n than_o those_o that_o thus_o suffer_v or_o shall_v that_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n which_o be_v so_o great_a a_o instrument_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o sin_v against_o god_n and_o dishonour_v of_o he_o and_o hurt_v other_o be_v dissolve_v into_o dust_n and_o shall_v another_o body_n be_v frame_v for_o that_o miserable_a soul_n to_o suffer_v with_o it_o those_o exquisite_a torment_n that_o the_o damn_a must_v suffer_v for_o ever_o sure_o this_o can_v be_v therefore_o it_o seem_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o justice_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v receive_v either_o reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o his_o own_o body_n which_o he_o have_v here_o in_o this_o life_n 6._o christ_n himself_o do_v rise_v with_o his_o own_o body_n viz._n with_o that_o body_n that_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o other_o that_o have_v sleep_v in_o their_o grave_n do_v come_v forth_o thence_o at_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n and_o sure_o they_o come_v forth_o with_o those_o very_a body_n that_o sleep_v there_o and_o not_o with_o new_a body_n matth._n 27.52_o 53._o faith_n 53._o we_o have_v here_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o first_o use_n 2._o let_v we_o labour_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o article_n and_o in_o order_n hereunto_o let_v we_o consider_v 1._o this_o article_n be_v that_o which_o many_o faithful_a christian_n be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n for_o and_o to_o seal_v with_o their_o own_o blood_n 1_o cor._n 15.29_o else_o what_o shall_v they_o do_v or_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v that_o be_v that_o suffer_v martyrdom_n 182._o martyrdom_n for_o so_o the_o word_n to_o be_v baptise_a signify_v sometime_o as_o mark_v 38._o and_o the_o praepos_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v for_o act_v 9.16_o see_v apost_n hist_o page_n 182._o for_o the_o dead_a namely_o for_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o why_o stand_v we_o in_o jeopardy_n every_o hour_n viz._n of_o the_o like_a baptism_n for_o the_o same_o profession_n either_o from_o persecute_v sadducee_n who_o allow_v no_o resurrection_n or_o from_o the_o furious_a jew_n who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v rise_v 2._o this_o article_n be_v a_o great_a foundation_n of_o a_o christian_n hope_v 1_o pet._n 1.3_o bless_a be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o according_a to_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n have_v beget_v we_o again_o unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a 1_o cor._n 15.19_o 3._o this_o doctrine_n tend_v much_o to_o the_o illustrate_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n justice_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n 4._o it_o teach_v we_o how_o much_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o have_v redeem_v our_o body_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n and_o will_v save_v our_o body_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n 3._o if_o there_o will_v be_v a_o resurrection_n let_v we_o not_o bewail_v the_o death_n of_o our_o pious_a friend_n with_o too_o much_o sorrow_n or_o concernment_n their_o body_n be_v but_o lay_v up_o for_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n 4._o the_o consideration_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v strengthen_v we_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o our_o own_o death_n as_o god_n say_v to_o jacob_n gen._n 46.3_o 4._o fear_v not_o to_o go_v down_o into_o egypt_n for_o i_o will_v go_v with_o thou_o and_o bring_v thou_o
lovely_a and_o amiable_a even_o in_o thy_o humiliation_n in_o this_o world_n but_o o_o how_o glorious_a be_v thou_o now_o triumph_v in_o heaven_n o_o how_o beneficial_a be_v thy_o merit_n how_o desirable_a be_v thy_o grace_n o_o let_v that_o fullness_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v pour_v forth_o without_o measure_n on_o thou_o flow_v down_o to_o we_o thy_o poor_a member_n o_o my_o soul_n imagine_v now_o thou_o see_v thy_o sweet_a saviour_n nail_v on_o the_o cross_n his_o body_n tear_v with_o the_o nail_n and_o his_o side_n pierce_v with_o a_o spear_n can_v thou_o choose_v but_o love_v he_o who_o endure_v so_o much_o to_o redeem_v thou_o from_o eternal_a misery_n the_o apostle_n paul_n ravish_v with_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n cry_v out_o if_o any_o man_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_fw-mi the_o penitent_a woman_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o who_o much_o be_v forgive_v love_v much_o luke_n 7.47_o and_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v so_o with_o thou_o now_o consider_v o_o my_o soul_n christ_n say_v if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n if_o thou_o love_v he_o love_v he_o in_o sincerity_n and_o delight_n to_o please_v he_o love_v his_o person_n high_o value_v his_o merit_n love_v his_o ordinance_n love_v his_o grace_n love_v his_o command_n o_o my_o soul_n can_v thou_o upon_o all_o these_o consideration_n say_v with_o peter_n lord_z thou_o know_v all_o thing_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o love_v thou_o 5._o excite_v in_o thyself_o love_n to_o all_o christian_n to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n pray_v earnest_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v protect_v they_o and_o defend_v they_o that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o perfect_a holiness_n more_o and_o more_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o unite_v they_o more_o and_o more_o one_o to_o another_o in_o his_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n and_o make_v they_o more_o exemplary_a in_o a_o holy_a conversation_n and_o supply_v they_o with_o all_o needful_a outward_a mercy_n and_o conduct_v they_o safe_a to_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n 6._o excite_v love_n in_o thy_o soul_n to_o thy_o very_a enemy_n say_v to_o thyself_o o_o my_o soul_n thou_o must_v forgive_v if_o thou_o expect_v to_o be_v forgive_v thy_o dear_a saviour_n require_v this_o of_o thou_o matth._n 6.14_o if_o you_o forgive_v man_n their_o trespass_n your_o heavenly_a father_n will_v also_o forgive_v you_o verse_n 15._o but_o if_o you_o forgive_v not_o man_n their_o trespass_n neither_o will_v your_o father_n forgive_v your_o trespass_n if_o thou_o expect_v to_o be_v forgive_v so_o many_o thousand_o talent_n thou_o must_v not_o take_v thy_o brother_n by_o the_o throat_n for_o a_o hundred_o penny_n matth._n 18.28_o thou_o must_v labour_v to_o be_v merciful_a as_o thy_o heavenly_a father_n be_v merciful_a readiness_n to_o forgive_v injury_n and_o wrong_n be_v a_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o gracious_a state_n but_o malice_n and_o revenge_n be_v a_o black_a mark_n and_o character_n therefore_o o_o my_o soul_n pray_v for_o thy_o very_a enemy_n this_o day_n lord_n convince_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n give_v they_o heart_n to_o repent_v of_o they_o turn_v their_o heart_n from_o they_o draw_v they_o to_o thy_o son_n that_o by_o he_o they_o may_v have_v pardon_n and_o life_n give_v they_o such_o a_o frame_n of_o spirit_n that_o thou_o may_v bless_v they_o o_o that_o i_o may_v meet_v their_o soul_n in_o heaven_n where_o we_o shall_v always_o love_v and_o agree_v together_o and_o never_o fall_v out_o more_o 7._o awake_v and_o excite_v in_o thyself_o spiritual_a joy_n and_o thankfulness_n say_v with_o holy_a david_n bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o forget_v not_o all_o his_o benefit_n have_v christ_n redeem_v thou_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o thou_o have_v he_o redeem_v thou_o and_o that_o not_o with_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o with_o his_o own_o precious_a blood_n have_v he_o make_v thy_o peace_n with_o god_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n have_v he_o vanquish_v death_n and_o satan_n for_o thou_o through_o his_o blood_n shall_v thou_o have_v a_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n and_o eternal_a glory_n oh_o transcendent_a mercy_n oh_o how_o great_a be_v this_o salvation_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o on_o the_o height_n and_o depth_n and_o length_n and_o breadth_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n be_v astonish_v oh_o my_o soul_n at_o this_o love_n and_o never_o be_v forgetful_a of_o it_o call_v upon_o the_o holy_a angel_n to_o join_v with_o thou_o this_o day_n in_o blessing_n god_n for_o these_o great_a and_o glorious_a benefit_n and_o never_o be_v unmindful_a of_o so_o transcendent_a mercy_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o grace_n we_o must_v especial_o labour_v to_o excite_v and_o exercise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o receive_v there_o be_v some_o other_o direction_n also_o that_o it_o will_v be_v needful_a thou_o shall_v observe_v at_o this_o time_n 1._o employ_v thy_o outward_a sense_n so_o as_o to_o stir_v up_o in_o thy_o heart_n spiritual_a grace_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o communicant_a lie_v not_o so_o much_o between_o the_o body_n and_o the_o element_n as_o the_o soul_n and_o christ_n 2._o when_o thou_o see_v the_o bread_n break_v think_v of_o these_o four_o thing_n 1._o the_o great_a pain_n and_o anguish_n our_o lord_n endure_v when_o his_o body_n be_v break_v on_o the_o cross_n can_v thou_o see_v christ_n body_n break_v for_o thou_o and_o thy_o heart_n not_o break_v with_o deep_a contrition_n for_o thy_o sin_n 2._o consider_v the_o great_a love_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o submit_v to_o such_o grievous_a pain_n and_o such_o disgrace_n for_o our_o sake_n think_v thou_o hear_v he_o say_v behold_v my_o friend_n how_o my_o flesh_n be_v tear_v and_o wound_v for_o your_o sake_n be_v there_o ever_o grief_n be_v there_o ever_o love_v like_o i_o 3._o consider_v the_o vile_a and_o odious_a nature_n of_o sin_n which_o bring_v our_o lord_n to_o such_o misery_n and_o require_v such_o blood_n to_o expiate_v it_o 4._o consider_v what_o the_o redemption_n of_o every_o soul_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v do_v cost_v it_o cost_v more_o than_o all_o the_o man_n and_o angel_n in_o the_o world_n can_v ever_o have_v pay_v for_o it_o 3._o when_o thou_o take_v the_o bread_n into_o thy_o hand_n and_o eat_v of_o it_o then_o say_v lord_z thou_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n thou_o be_v the_o only_a redeemer_n of_o lose_a soul_n i_o free_o take_v thou_o for_o my_o lord_n and_o saviour_n i_o free_o consent_v to_o the_o covenant_n i_o be_v enter_v into_o in_o my_o baptism_n lord_n save_v i_o and_o sanctify_v i_o o_o interpose_v thy_o merit_n this_o day_n for_o my_o pardon_n and_o strengthen_v i_o by_o thy_o grace_n that_o i_o may_v be_v faithful_a to_o thou_o to_o the_o end_n and_o so_o may_v at_o last_o receive_v a_o crown_n of_o life_n lord_n behold_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o thy_o son_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o his_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n be_v please_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o i_o to_o pardon_v all_o my_o transgression_n and_o by_o thy_o grace_n so_o to_o sanctify_v my_o heart_n that_o no_o sin_n may_v have_v dominion_n over_o i_o fill_v i_o with_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v if_o i_o have_v find_v favour_n in_o thy_o eye_n give_v i_o more_o and_o more_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n and_o cause_v i_o to_o grow_v in_o grace_n daily_o and_o make_v i_o fruitful_a in_o good_a work_n 4._o when_o thou_o take_v the_o cup_n into_o thy_o hand_n think_v again_o of_o the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v purchase_v we_o to_o himself_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n oh_o the_o infinite_a value_n o_o the_o infinite_a worth_n of_o this_o blood_n this_o be_v the_o blood_n that_o only_o can_v make_v expiation_n and_o give_v god_n full_a satisfaction_n for_o our_o offence_n one_o drop_n of_o this_o blood_n be_v worth_a a_o world_n this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n heb._n 13.20_o that_o be_v whereby_o our_o saviour_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o fall_v man_n which_o covenant_n shall_v never_o be_v alter_v o_o bless_a saviour_n wash_v my_o soul_n in_o this_o thy_o precious_a blood_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o my_o sin_n and_o cleanse_v i_o from_o all_o my_o iniquity_n and_o be_v to_o i_o all_o that_o which_o thou_o do_v intend_v to_o be_v to_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o thou_o by_o such_o prayer_n soliloquy_n and_o holy_a meditation_n thou_o shall_v labour_v to_o sanctify_v thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v about_o receive_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n 5._o join_v with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o communicant_n in_o a_o hearty_a praise_a god_n for_o
all_o must_v not_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o oath_n itself_o but_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v we_o must_v not_o swear_v at_o all_o false_o rash_o or_o in_o ordinary_a communication_n neither_o direct_o by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n nor_o by_o the_o creature_n and_o to_o prevent_v this_o our_o saviour_n add_v verse_n 37._o let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o yea_o nay_o nay_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o these_o come_v of_o evil_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v what_o you_o have_v to_o affirm_v non._n affirm_v quod_fw-la affirmatis_fw-la veer_fw-mi affirmate_v &_o quod_fw-la negatis_fw-la veer_fw-la negate_n rabbini_n dicunt_fw-la justorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la &_o non_fw-la eorum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la ausonius_n ad_fw-la paulinum_n cum_fw-la multa_fw-la loquaces_fw-la ambiguis_fw-la sererent_fw-la verbis_fw-la contra_fw-la onmia_fw-la solum_fw-la est_fw-la respondebat_fw-la vel_fw-la non._n affirm_v it_o simple_o without_o a_o oath_n and_o what_o you_o have_v to_o deny_v deny_v it_o simple_o without_o a_o oath_n hieronymus_n oath_n christianos_n svi_fw-la temporis_fw-la repre●endit_fw-la tertullianus_n qui_fw-la aut_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la aut_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la vitio_fw-la dicerent_fw-la mehercule_fw-la medius_fw-la fidius_fw-la quod_fw-la &_o post_fw-la eum_fw-la fecit_fw-la hieronymus_n for_o customary_a swear_n by_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o man_n swear_v come_v of_o satan_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n a_o true_a and_o plain_a affirmation_n and_o negation_n in_o daily_a speech_n be_v sufficient_a and_o if_o you_o use_v any_o thing_n more_o you_o will_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o sin_v and_o fall_v into_o the_o judgement_n downham_n judgement_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heinsius_n verba_fw-la christi_fw-la mat._n 5._o verse_n 34._o ad_fw-la quae_fw-la jacobus_n sine_fw-la dubio_fw-la respicit_fw-la conjuncta_fw-la legit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n unde_fw-la emergit_fw-la sensus_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la omninò_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la jurandum_fw-la cum_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la nullum_fw-la ex_fw-la j●randi_fw-la formulis_fw-la tum_fw-la usitatis_fw-la usurpandum_fw-la heathenish_a oath_n also_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v except_o they_o will_v say_v they_o personate_v heathen_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o as_o aedipol_n mehercule_fw-la per_fw-la jupiter_fw-la immortalem_fw-la curse_a be_v that_o elegancy_n that_o be_v join_v with_o idolatry_n say_v the_o learned_a downham_n and_o condemnation_n of_o god_n further_n that_o our_o saviour_n speak_v here_o only_o of_o private_a oath_n it_o be_v manifest_a in_o that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o in_o their_o public_a oath_n before_o the_o magistrate_n swear_v by_o the_o creature_n but_o by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n only_o and_o this_o may_v also_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n itself_o for_o he_o say_v let_v your_o communication_n or_o ordinary_a speech_n one_o to_o another_o be_v yea_o yea_o nay_o nay_o 4._o i_o come_v now_o to_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n a_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v take_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n instruct_v we_o full_o as_o to_o this_o chap._n 4.2_o thou_o shall_v swear_v say_v he_o the_o lord_n live_v in_o truth_n in_o judgement_n and_o in_o righteousness_n 1._o in_o truth_n that_o be_v true_o swear_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n and_o not_o abuse_v the_o dreadful_a name_n of_o god_n to_o attest_v a_o falsehood_n zech._n 5.4_o god_n severe_o threaten_v he_o that_o swear_v false_o by_o his_o name_n 2._o in_o judgement_n that_o be_v considerate_o well_o weigh_v what_o thou_o be_v to_o swear_v and_o by_o who_o 3._o in_o righteousness_n bind_v thyself_o to_o nothing_o but_o what_o be_v in_o itself_o just_a and_o right_a and_o have_v a_o full_a purpose_n to_o perform_v what_o thou_o by_o oath_n bind_v thyself_o to_o and_o be_v careful_a to_o make_v it_o good_a according_o concern_v the_o rite_n and_o form_n of_o swear_v i_o find_v these_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n 1._o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n thus_o abraham_n swear_v gen._n 14.22_o and_o abraham_n say_v to_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n i_o have_v lift_v up_o my_o hand_n unto_o the_o lord_n the_o most_o h_o gh_a god_n etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o the_o angel_n swear_v rev._n 10.5_o and_o the_o angel_n which_o i_o see_v stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o earth_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n and_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o 2._o put_v the_o hand_n under_o the_o thigh_n thus_o abraham_n servant_n swear_v gen._n 24.2_o and_o abraham_n say_v unto_o his_o elder_a servant_n of_o his_o house_n that_o rule_v over_o all_o that_o he_o have_v put_v i_o pray_v thou_o thy_o hand_n under_o my_o thigh_n and_o i_o will_v make_v thou_o swear_v by_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o god_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o thou_o shall_v not_o take_v a_o wife_n for_o my_o son_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o canaanite_n and_o thus_o jacob_n cause_v joseph_n to_o swear_v gen._n 47.29_o 30_o 31._o if_o now_o i_o have_v find_v grace_n in_o thy_o sight_n put_z i_o pray_v thou_o thy_o hand_n under_o my_o thigh_n and_o swear_v unto_o i_o and_o he_o swear_v unto_o he_o our_o rite_n of_o swear_v for_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n be_v by_o put_v the_o hand_n on_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o kiss_v it_o which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o i_o suppose_v only_o to_o signify_v our_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o expect_v help_n from_o he_o through_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n as_o we_o speak_v the_o truth_n dr._n ames_n lib._n 2._o med._n c._n 10._o say_v that_o solemnity_n which_o in_o some_o place_n be_v use_v of_o touch_v and_o kiss_v the_o book_n be_v plain_o of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o import_n with_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o hand_n that_o be_v it_o signify_v a_o man_n consent_n to_o swear_v and_o to_o the_o oath_n itself_o altar_n itself_o in_o solomon_n time_n when_o they_o take_v a_o oath_n they_o touch_v the_o altar_n which_o ceremony_n be_v also_o use_v among_o the_o gentile_n whereby_o be_v signify_v that_o they_o call_v he_o to_o witness_v who_o be_v worship_v with_o sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o those_o altar_n but_o if_o any_o scruple_n this_o rite_n and_o form_n of_o swear_v and_o have_v rather_o use_v that_o other_o of_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n to_o the_o most_o high_a i_o see_v no_o reason_n if_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v indulge_v therein_o this_o form_n of_o swear_v be_v every_o way_n as_o bind_v as_o the_o other_o 5._o i_o come_v now_o in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o show_v the_o great_a evil_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o rash_a customary_a and_o unnecessary_a swear_n this_o be_v a_o sin_n very_o rise_v and_o common_a in_o our_o nation_n and_o one_o of_o those_o for_o which_o the_o land_n mourn_v i_o shall_v therefore_o present_v several_a argument_n and_o consideration_n which_o may_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v the_o heinousness_n of_o it_o 1._o consider_v how_o sacred_a and_o venerable_a the_o name_n of_o our_o great_a god_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v unto_o we_o every_o thought_n and_o mention_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o reverence_n it_o be_v a_o duty_n strict_o enjoin_v deut._n 28.58_o thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o glorious_a and_o dreadful_a name_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n how_o great_a a_o sin_n than_o be_v it_o to_o vilify_v profane_a and_o make_v it_o common_a how_o high_a a_o provocation_n must_v it_o need_v be_v to_o the_o almighty_a for_o poor_a mortal_n familiar_o to_o toss_v his_o dreadful_a name_n in_o their_o mouth_n upon_o every_o slight_a occasion_n and_o to_o make_v it_o the_o ordinary_a expletive_a or_o fill_v up_o of_o their_o speech_n and_o language_n sure_o some_o of_o the_o more_o civilise_a heathen_n be_v of_o better_a mind_n and_o use_v the_o name_n of_o their_o god_n with_o more_o reverence_n but_o o_o the_o impiety_n of_o our_o time_n how_o profane_o and_o irreverent_o do_v some_o who_o call_v themselves_o christians_o use_v the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a god_n who_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n continual_o delight_v to_o laud_n and_o praise_n cry_v holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n the_o whole_a earth_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n isa_n 6.3_o 2._o consider_v that_o the_o second_o and_o three_o commandment_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v several_a threaten_n annex_v to_o they_o to_o show_v we_o how_o great_o god_n be_v provoke_v by_o idolatry_n and_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a he_o threaten_v he_o will_v not_o hold_v such_o guiltless_a that_o be_v he_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o absolve_v or_o acquit_v such_o transgressor_n that_o he_o will_v grievous_o punish_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v his_o just_a judgement_n
3._o consider_v our_o tongue_n shall_v be_v our_o glory_n the_o proper_a end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o the_o use_n of_o speech_n be_v to_o glorify_v and_o honour_v he_o our_o creator_n and_o to_o profit_v one_o another_o our_o word_n therefore_o shall_v be_v good_a sound_a and_o savoury_a let_v no_o corrupt_a communication_n say_v the_o apostle_n eph._n 4.29_o proceed_v out_o of_o your_o mouth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a to_o the_o use_n of_o edify_v that_o it_o may_v minister_v grace_n to_o the_o hearer_n and_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o mat._n 12.36_o that_o of_o every_o idle_a word_n which_o be_v frivolous_a and_o fruitless_a we_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o therefore_o a_o much_o more_o severe_a account_n sure_o man_n shall_v give_v of_o their_o wicked_a swear_n blaspheme_a and_o curse_v which_o be_v no_o proper_a work_n for_o they_o to_o employ_v their_o tongue_n in_o but_o a_o horrible_a deprave_a pervert_v and_o defile_v of_o so_o excellent_a a_o member_n 4._o consider_v what_o a_o high_a pitch_n of_o wickedness_n it_o be_v for_o any_o to_o deprave_v such_o a_o holy_a institution_n as_o a_o oath_n be_v which_o shall_v always_o be_v use_v reverent_o and_o only_o upon_o great_a and_o serious_a occasion_n and_o to_o prostitute_v it_o to_o the_o vent_n of_o every_o base_a passion_n and_o utter_v of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n and_o fearlesness_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v a_o tremendous_a ordinance_n to_o we_o a_o common_a slight_a and_o familiar_a thing_n 5._o consider_v how_o dishonourable_a it_o be_v to_o our_o christian_a profession_n that_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o christians_o shall_v live_v in_o such_o a_o flat_a contradiction_n to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v make_v nothing_o of_o familiar_a and_o customary_a swear_n which_o he_o so_o severe_o prohibit_n matth._n 5.33_o james_n 5.12_o be_v not_o this_o one_o of_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v blaspheme_v among_o turk_n jew_n and_o infidel_n 6._o consider_v this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o sin_n for_o which_o god_n have_v a_o controversy_n with_o a_o nation_n and_o which_o hasten_v down_o judgement_n upon_o it_o hos_fw-la 4.1_o 2._o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o controversy_n with_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o land_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n nor_o mercy_n nor_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o the_o land_n by_o swear_v and_o lie_v and_o kill_v and_o steal_v and_o commit_v adultery_n they_o break_v out_o and_o blood_n touch_v blood_n jer._n 23.10_o because_o of_o swear_v the_o land_n mourn_v see_v also_o zech._n 5_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o amos_n 8.14_o zeph._n 1.4_o 5._o 7._o consider_v how_o high_o this_o sin_n be_v aggravate_v and_o the_o guilt_n of_o it_o enhance_v in_o that_o there_o be_v so_o little_a temptation_n to_o it_o other_o sin_n have_v a_o external_a bait_n and_o motive_n either_o pleasure_n profit_n or_o credit_n but_o in_o swear_v and_o curse_v there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o o_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o this_o sin_n what_o sense_n be_v gratify_v by_o it_o or_o what_o be_v there_o to_o incite_v or_o move_v a_o man_n to_o it_o but_o mere_o pride_n and_o audaciousness_n of_o spirit_n presumption_n and_o fearlesness_n of_o the_o almighty_a now_o the_o less_o temptation_n there_o be_v to_o any_o sin_n the_o great_a be_v the_o contempt_n of_o god_n in_o the_o commit_n of_o it_o this_o sin_n be_v therefore_o much_o worse_a than_o epicurism_n church-porch_n epicurism_n take_v not_o his_o name_n who_o make_v thy_o mouth_n in_o vain_a it_o get_v thou_o nothing_o and_o have_v no_o excuse_n lust_n and_o wine_n plead_v a_o pleasure_n avarice_n gain_n but_o the_o cheap_a swearer_n through_o his_o open_a sluice_n let_v we_o his_o soul_n run_v for_o nought_o as_o little_o fear_v be_v i_o a_o epicure_n i_o can_v bate_v swear_v the_o cheap_a sin_n most_o dear_o punish_v be_v because_o to_o shun_v they_o also_o be_v so_o cheap_a etc._n etc._n herbert_n church-porch_n for_o though_o that_o be_v more_o bestial_a yet_o this_o be_v more_o diabolical_a and_o proceed_v from_o a_o obstinate_a pride_n and_o wilfulness_n more_o conform_v a_o man_n to_o the_o devil_n than_o other_o sin_n do_v o_o what_o a_o height_n of_o wickedness_n be_v it_o for_o man_n to_o sin_n mere_o because_o they_o will_v sin_v and_o to_o transgress_v the_o more_o audacious_o because_o god_n forbid_v it_o it_o be_v a_o dreadful_a doom_n pass_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n on_o such_o person_n psal_n 25.3_o let_v they_o be_v confound_v that_o transgress_v without_o cause_n bless_a lord_n how_o infinite_a be_v thy_o patience_n to_o bear_v so_o long_o with_o those_o hellish_a oath_n and_o direful_a imprecation_n that_o the_o tongue_n of_o wretched_a mortal_n daily_a belch_v out_o against_o thou_o to_o what_o a_o strange_a pitch_n of_o wickedness_n be_v the_o world_n come_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v count_v a_o point_n of_o bravery_n and_o gallantry_n to_o swear_v stout_o and_o to_o interlace_v their_o language_n with_o broad_a and_o full_a mouth_a oath_n nay_o the_o dare_a fellow_n of_o our_o day_n as_o if_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o go_v to_o hell_n the_o ordinary_a way_n have_v invent_v new_a way_n of_o sin_v and_o such_o dreadful_a form_n of_o swear_v as_o may_v make_v the_o heart_n of_o any_o serious_a christian_a to_o tremble_v at_o ●●e_v very_a mention_n of_o they_o these_o son_n of_o belial_n if_o they_o be_v but_o cross_v in_o their_o business_n or_o pleasure_n many_o time_n curse_v and_o swear_v like_o devil_n and_o swear_v so_o mad_o that_o when_o they_o be_v reprove_v for_o it_o they_o will_v swear_v they_o do_v not_o swear_v who_o be_v there_o now_o that_o walk_v abroad_o especial_o in_o our_o great_a town_n and_o city_n but_o shall_v here_o these_o hellish_a oath_n god_n damn_v i_o or_o sink_v i_o belch_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n who_o tongue_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n of_o hell_n o_o shall_v we_o rend_v our_o garment_n every_o time_n we_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o god_n blaspheme_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v of_o old_a how_o few_o sober_a serious_a christian_n will_v go_v in_o whole_a apparel_n ah_o besotted_a wretch_n that_o you_o shall_v thus_o sell_v yourselves_o to_o do_v wicked_o that_o you_o that_o be_v but_o crawl_a worm_n shall_v dare_v thus_o to_o set_v your_o mouth_n against_o heaven_n and_o impudent_o affront_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o most_o high_a let_v i_o speak_v to_o you_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n 57.4_o do_v you_o know_v against_o who_o you_o make_v a_o wide_a mouth_n and_o draw_v out_o the_o tongue_n what_o can_v your_o wit_n wit_n say_v i_o i_o mean_v your_o madness_n find_v no_o cheap_a way_n to_o undo_v yourselves_o be_v you_o resolve_v to_o try_v the_o patience_n of_o god_n and_o to_o see_v how_o long_o he_o can_v forbear_v you_o be_v you_o afraid_a you_o shall_v miss_v of_o hell_n except_o you_o sin_n at_o a_o high_a rate_n than_o ordinary_a and_o therefore_o be_v resolve_v by_o your_o damn_v provocation_n to_o force_v your_o entrance_n into_o it_o and_o take_v it_o by_o violence_n do_v you_o fear_v the_o devil_n will_v not_o torment_v you_o enough_o except_o you_o do_v supererogate_v of_o he_o by_o be_v more_o wicked_a than_o you_o have_v any_o temptation_n to_o be_v that_o so_o you_o may_v have_v a_o double_a portion_n in_o hell_n can_v you_o find_v out_o no_o other_o way_n of_o damn_v yourselves_o but_o by_o sin_v direct_o against_o that_o precious_a blood_n and_o wound_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o other_o be_v save_v do_v you_o thus_o perform_v your_o baptismal_a covenant_n whereby_o you_o stand_v engage_v to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n and_o to_o fight_v faithful_o under_o christ_n banner_n all_o your_o day_n what_o ail_v you_o you_o blind_a wretch_n be_v you_o in_o such_o haste_n to_o be_v with_o your_o everlasting_a companion_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o damn_a that_o you_o will_v needs_o hasten_v your_o judgement_n and_o bring_v on_o your_o damnation_n with_o a_o swift_a pace_n be_v you_o now_o inure_v yourselves_o to_o the_o language_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o infernal_a tophet_n that_o you_o may_v not_o have_v it_o to_o learn_v when_o you_o come_v thither_o poor_a wretch_n what_o will_v become_v of_o you_o how_o soon_o to_o your_o sorrow_n will_v your_o imprecation_n fall_v on_o your_o head_n the_o devil_n who_o you_o have_v so_o often_o wish_v may_v fetch_v you_o stand_v eager_o wait_v for_o his_o commission_n to_o do_v it_o and_o then_o you_o shall_v know_v to_o your_o cost_n whether_o god_n
imaginable_a and_o to_o this_o end_n god_n usual_o design_v it_o as_o he_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n 5.15_o i_o will_v go_v and_o return_v to_o my_o place_n till_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o offence_n and_o seek_v my_o face_n in_o their_o affliction_n they_o will_v seek_v i_o early_o joseph_n brethren_n be_v a_o great_a instance_n of_o this_o who_o when_o they_o be_v put_v into_o prison_n and_o bring_v into_o distress_n than_o their_o conscience_n begin_v to_o tell_v they_o how_o they_o have_v use_v their_o brother_n joseph_n gen._n 24.21_o very_o we_o be_v guilty_a concern_v our_o brother_n in_o that_o we_o see_v the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n when_o he_o beseech_v we_o and_o we_o will_v not_o hear_v therefore_o be_v this_o distress_n come_v upon_o we_o 2._o by_o sanctify_a affliction_n he_o call_v for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o faith_n patience_n humility_n self-denial_n and_o will_v crown_v and_o reward_v the_o exercise_n of_o these_o grace_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v plant_v in_o they_o 3._o hereby_o he_o crucify_v their_o heart_n to_o the_o world_n as_o nurse_n lay_v wormwood_n or_o some_o bitter_a thing_n upon_o their_o nipple_n when_o they_o intend_v to_o wean_v their_o child_n so_o god_n imbitter_v the_o world_n oftentimes_o to_o his_o own_o child_n to_o wean_v they_o from_o it_o we_o read_v how_o antigonus_n see_v a_o soldier_n of_o his_o venture_n upon_o any_o danger_n and_o observe_v withal_o that_o he_o be_v very_o sickly_a take_v care_n to_o have_v he_o recover_v to_o good_a health_n which_o do_v the_o man_n will_v not_o expose_v himself_o as_o before_o he_o have_v use_v to_o do_v allege_v that_o now_o his_o life_n be_v of_o more_o value_n to_o he_o and_o not_o to_o be_v hazard_v as_o when_o it_o be_v only_o a_o burden_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o prosperity_n make_v man_n love_v the_o world_n whilst_o affliction_n wean_v they_o from_o it_o 4._o hereby_o he_o quicken_v their_o devotion_n and_o excite_v the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n in_o they_o whereas_o fore_o possible_o they_o be_v too_o cold_a and_o formal_a in_o their_o prayer_n now_o they_o pray_v earnest_o how_o do_v daniel_n pray_v in_o the_o lion_n den_n how_o do_v jonah_n pray_v in_o the_o whale_n belly_n how_o do_v the_o three_o worthy_n pray_v in_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n people_n under_o affliction_n pray_v at_o another_o rate_n than_o those_o do_v who_o be_v at_o ease_n and_o in_o prosperity_n 5._o hereby_o he_o conform_v they_o unto_o his_o son_n who_o be_v a_o man_n of_o sorrow_n and_o acquaint_v with_o grief_n and_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o rom._n 8.17_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o be_v glorify_v with_o he_o 9_o take_v heed_n of_o all_o eager_a and_o inordinate_a desire_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n more_o dangerous_a to_o a_o man_n than_o such_o vehement_a desire_n omnis_fw-la inordinatus_fw-la appetitus_fw-la sibi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la poena_fw-la est_fw-la common_o god_n cross_v eager_a desire_n and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o ready_a way_n to_o miss_v any_o thing_n we_o have_v a_o mind_n unto_o or_o to_o have_v it_o curse_a to_o we_o than_o over_o eager_o to_o desire_v it_o strong_a affection_n breed_v strong_a affliction_n alas_o we_o be_v very_o unmeet_a chooser_n for_o ourselves_o we_o see_v not_o what_o that_o person_n or_o that_o place_n or_o that_o thing_n we_o so_o eager_o desire_v may_v prove_v many_o have_v be_v ready_a with_o rachel_n to_o say_v give_v i_o child_n or_o else_o i_o die_v when_o those_o child_n they_o have_v so_o earnest_o desire_v have_v afterward_o break_v their_o heart_n with_o grief_n and_o vexation_n at_o their_o ill-carriage_n whenever_o therefore_o we_o find_v any_o eager_a desire_n or_o long_n in_o ourselves_o after_o any_o worldly_a thing_n we_o shall_v be_v afraid_a of_o they_o and_o check_v they_o as_o foreboding_a ill_n to_o we_o and_o further_o we_o shall_v consider_v how_o much_o our_o eager_a desire_n after_o worldly_a thing_n do_v shame_n and_o aggravate_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o spiritual_a desire_n we_o can_v eager_o long_a for_o this_o or_o that_o worldly_a accommodation_n can_v hardly_o sleep_v for_o think_v of_o it_o but_o for_o heaven_n or_o heavenly_a thing_n how_o cold_a how_o indifferent_a be_v we_o 10._o see_v true_a christian_a contentment_n be_v a_o lesson_n teach_v only_o in_o christ_n school_n let_v we_o all_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v his_o scholar_n and_o put_v ourselves_o into_o his_o school_n paul_n learn_v this_o lesson_n here_o i_o know_v how_o to_o be_v abase_v and_o i_o know_v how_o to_o abound_v i_o be_o instruct_v both_o to_o be_v full_a and_o to_o be_v hungry_a both_o to_o abound_v and_o to_o suffer_v need_n i_o can_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n through_o christ_n strengthen_v of_o i_o phil._n 4.12_o 13._o philosopher_n have_v many_o precept_n and_o direction_n about_o contentment_n but_o alas_o they_o be_v all_o short_a of_o teach_v this_o lesson_n effectual_o lipsius_n that_o have_v write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr stoica_n philosophia_fw-la and_o have_v gather_v together_o many_o of_o their_o precept_n of_o patience_n when_o he_o come_v to_o die_v a_o friend_n of_o his_o tell_v he_o of_o that_o book_n and_o advise_v he_o to_o remember_v what_o he_o have_v there_o write_v yes_o say_n he_o but_o domine_fw-la da_fw-la mihi_fw-la patientiam_fw-la christianam_fw-la lord_n give_v i_o christian_a patience_n for_o that_o be_v it_o which_o i_o now_o need_n but_o if_o this_o lesson_n be_v only_o teach_v in_o christ_n school_n you_o will_v ask_v i_o how_o do_v christ_n teach_v it_o i_o answer_v he_o teach_v it_o three_o way_n by_o his_o word_n by_o his_o example_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n 1._o he_o teach_v it_o by_o the_o precept_n of_o his_o word_n whereby_o he_o enjoin_v and_o command_v it_o luke_n 21.19_o in_o your_o patencei_n possess_v your_o soul_n 1_o tim._n 6.11_o follow_v after_o righteousness_n faith_n love_n patience_n meekness_n jam._n 1.4_o let_v patience_n have_v its_o perfect_a work_n that_o you_o may_v be_v entire_a want_v nothing_o 2_o pet._n 1.6_o add_v to_o faith_n temperance_n to_o temperance_n patience_n to_o patience_n godliness_n because_o thou_o have_v keep_v the_o word_n of_o my_o patience_n say_v the_o angel_n to_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n that_o be_v my_o word_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o to_o be_v patient_n i_o will_v also_o keep_v thou_o from_o the_o hour_n of_o temptation_n 2._o christ_n teach_v it_o by_o the_o promise_v of_o his_o word_n he_o have_v make_v many_o gracious_a promise_n in_o his_o word_n which_o be_v a_o great_a mean_n to_o support_v his_o people_n and_o to_o frame_v their_o heart_n to_o contentation_n in_o every_o condition_n in_o heb._n 13.5_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o provision_n for_o they_o be_v content_n with_o such_o thing_n as_o you_o have_v for_o he_o have_v say_v i_o will_v never_o leave_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o psal_n 34.10_o the_o young_a lion_n do_v lack_v and_o suffer_v hunger_n but_o they_o that_o seek_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o want_v any_o good_a thing_n in_o psal_n 91.11_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o protection_n unto_o they_o he_o shall_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o to_o keep_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n heb._n 1.14_o be_v not_o they_o all_o minister_a spirit_n send_v forth_o to_o minister_v for_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o salvation_n in_o jam._n 1.5_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o counsel_n to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o perplexity_n and_o under_o trouble_n if_o any_o man_n lack_v wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o direct_v he_o how_o to_o govern_v himself_o under_o any_o afflict_a condition_n let_v he_o ask_v it_o of_o god_n who_o give_v liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o 2_o cor._n 7.6_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o comfort_n to_o those_o that_o be_v unde●_n great_a fear_n and_o apprehension_n of_o danger_n there_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v a_o god_n who_o comfort_v those_o that_o be_v cast_v down_o in_o esai_n 41.10_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n to_o strengthen_v his_o people_n under_o great_a pressure_n fear_v thou_o not_o for_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o be_v not_o dismay_v for_o i_o be_o thy_o god_n i_o will_v strengthen_v thou_o yea_o i_o will_v help_v thou_o yea_o i_o will_v uphold_v thou_o with_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o my_o righteousness_n in_o rom._n 8.28_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n to_o order_v all_o thing_n for_o their_o good_a we_o know_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a to_o they_o that_o fear_v god_n 3_o christ_n teach_v it_o by_o his_o own_o example_n learn_v of_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 11.29_o for_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o
themselves_o to_o consider_v what_o kind_n of_o life_n that_o be_v that_o be_v there_o live_v they_o savour_v and_o relish_v earthly_a thing_n but_o spiritual_a thing_n seem_v to_o they_o to_o have_v no_o taste_n in_o they_o but_o the_o true_a christian_a exercise_n himself_o in_o the_o meditation_n of_o thing_n invisible_a and_o life_n in_o the_o believe_a view_n of_o the_o excellency_n and_o reality_n of_o those_o thing_n and_o by_o faith_n ascertain_v they_o to_o himself_o the_o martyr_n have_v their_o heart_n set_v on_o thing_n unseen_a the_o invisible_a comfort_n and_o recompense_n of_o the_o other_o life_n bear_v up_o their_o heart_n against_o the_o terror_n of_o visible_a and_o present_a torment_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o covetousness_n 4._o i_o come_v now_o to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o such_o as_o be_v covetous_a and_o earthly-minded_n and_o who_o may_v be_v style_v man_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o man_n who_o knowledge_n and_o skill_n lie_v only_a or_o chief_o about_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v shroud_v understanding_n man_n in_o worldly_a matter_n but_o in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o such_o as_o concern_v their_o soul_n and_o their_o everlasting_a welfare_n mere_a child_n in_o the_o thing_n that_o concern_v their_o trade_n or_o profession_n they_o be_v notable_a man_n but_o talk_v with_o they_o about_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n about_o conversion_n and_o regeneration_n about_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o repentance_n or_o faith_n and_o they_o know_v little_a 2._o their_o heart_n be_v chief_o set_v on_o these_o thing_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n they_o love_v and_o affect_v as_o be_v suitable_a to_o their_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n command_v we_o 1_o john_n 2.15_o not_o to_o love_v the_o world_n nor_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n for_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o three_o head_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o sensual_a pleasure_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n or_o riches_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v see_v with_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n that_o be_v preferment_n and_o honour_n but_o though_o the_o apostle_n command_v we_o shall_v not_o set_v our_o heart_n or_o affection_n on_o these_o thing_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o world_n trinity_n and_o more_o adore_v by_o they_o than_o father_n son_n and_o holy-ghost_n 3._o their_o discourse_n be_v chief_o about_o these_o thing_n 1_o john_n 4.5_o they_o be_v of_o the_o world_n therefore_o speak_v they_o of_o the_o world_n their_o breath_n be_v earthy_a which_o they_o say_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o death_n talk_v with_o they_o about_o worldly_a thing_n none_o more_o free_a to_o discourse_v than_o they_o but_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o matter_n that_o concern_v their_o soul_n they_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v such_o discourse_n be_v usual_o unpleasing_a to_o they_o 4._o their_o pain_n and_o endeavour_n nummos_fw-la endeavour_n rem_fw-la rem_fw-la quocunque_fw-la modo_fw-la rem_fw-la ocives_fw-la querenda_fw-la pecunia_fw-la primum_fw-la est_fw-la virtus_fw-la post_fw-la nummos_fw-la be_v only_o or_o chief_o for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n they_o take_v little_a pain_n about_o their_o own_o soul_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o under_o their_o care_n but_o be_v mighty_a industrious_a about_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n they_o rise_v early_o and_o sit_v up_o late_o to_o acquire_v they_o but_o a_o short_a attendance_n upon_o religious_a duty_n and_o exercise_n what_o a_o weariness_n be_v it_o to_o they_o and_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o snuff_v at_o it_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v mal._n 1.13_o they_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o care_n and_o pain_n how_o they_o may_v live_v here_o it_o may_v be_v ten_o or_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o year_n but_o they_o take_v no_o thought_n how_o they_o shall_v live_v a_o thousand_o year_n hence_o when_o they_o have_v leave_v their_o body_n in_o the_o earth_n oh_o be_v the_o endeavour_n of_o these_o man_n for_o the_o save_n of_o their_o immortal_a precious_a soul_n but_o any_o thing_n answerable_a to_o the_o pain_n they_o take_v to_o get_v the_o world_n how_o happy_a may_v they_o be_v god_n be_v not_o always_o please_v to_o bless_v and_o succeed_v the_o endeavour_n of_o man_n who_o be_v very_o diligent_a in_o their_o call_n and_o painful_a and_o laborious_a to_o get_v wealth_n god_n see_v it_o best_o to_o keep_v they_o low_o but_o what_o man_n ever_o be_v diligent_a and_o serious_a in_o seek_v the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o work_v out_o his_o salvation_n that_o do_v not_o find_v god_n assist_v of_o he_o and_o prosper_v his_o endeavour_n 5._o they_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o secure_v to_o themselves_o those_o temporal_a thing_n but_o use_v no_o answerable_a care_n to_o secure_v to_o themselves_o thing_n eternal_a they_o be_v very_o careful_a about_o the_o title_n of_o their_o land_n and_o purchase_n and_o hardly_o ever_o think_v themselves_o secure_a enough_o let_v a_o minister_n come_v to_o one_o of_o these_o man_n on_o his_o deathbed_n and_o ask_v he_o concern_v the_o evidence_n of_o his_o estate_n he_o will_v tell_v he_o they_o be_v all_o safe_a in_o such_o a_o trunk_n or_o chest_n but_o let_v he_o ask_v he_o what_o evidence_n he_o have_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v in_o a_o safe_a condition_n alas_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v he_o have_v not_o mind_v those_o thing_n his_o soul_n be_v leave_v upon_o miserable_a uncertainty_n he_o have_v take_v no_o care_n to_o secure_v to_o himself_o erernal_a aeternitas_fw-la erernal_a nulla_fw-la satis_fw-la magna_fw-la secu●itas_fw-la ubi_fw-la periclitatur_fw-la aeternitas_fw-la happiness_n he_o have_v take_v care_n to_o leave_v a_o clear_a estate_n to_o his_o child_n but_o no_o care_n to_o clear_v his_o soul_n of_o guilt_n or_o to_o deliver_v himself_o from_o the_o wrath_n that_o be_v to_o come_v 6._o they_o be_v common_o very_o solicitous_a about_o their_o own_o private_a interest_n but_o little_a or_o nothing_o concern_v about_o the_o interest_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o church_n they_o be_v whole_o and_o only_o for_o themselves_o we_o read_v 1_o sam._n 4.13_o that_o old_a eli_n heart_n tremble_v for_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o his_o gracious_a presence_n among_o they_o but_o how_o little_a be_v worldly_a and_o earthly-minded_n man_n concern_v how_o it_o fare_v with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n provide_v their_o own_o private_a worldly_a concernment_n be_v safe_a and_o secure_a 7._o these_o outward_a thing_n they_o make_v their_o trust_n and_o confidence_n they_o set_v their_o prime_a affection_n of_o love_n and_o trust_v upon_o they_o in_o that_o measure_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n the_o rich_a man_n wealth_n be_v his_o strong_a city_n prov._n 10.16_o they_o make_v gold_n their_o hope_n and_o fine_a gold_n their_o confidence_n job_n 31.24_o their_o wealth_n be_v the_o idol_n upon_o which_o they_o dote_v their_o confidence_n and_o trust_n be_v take_v off_o from_o god_n and_o place_v upon_o their_o riches_n as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psal_n 52.7_o lo_o these_o be_v the_o man_n that_o make_v not_o god_n their_o strength_n but_o trust_n in_o the_o abundance_n of_o their_o riches_n and_o this_o their_o way_n be_v their_o folly_n and_o a_o course_n very_o injurious_a to_o god_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a object_n of_o our_o trust_n and_o can_v only_o help_v we_o in_o a_o day_n of_o trouble_n the_o scripture_n do_v frequent_o dissuade_v man_n from_o such_o carnal_a confidence_n 1_o tim._n 6.17_o charge_v they_o that_o be_v rich_a in_o this_o world_n that_o they_o be_v not_o high-minded_a nor_o trust_n in_o uncertain_a riches_n but_o in_o the_o live_a god_n psal_n 62.10_o if_o riches_n increase_v set_v not_o your_o heart_n upon_o they_o and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o give_v we_o this_o precept_n matth._n 6.19_o lay_v not_o up_o for_o yourselves_o treasure_n upon_o earth_n where_o moth_n and_o rust_n do_v corrupt_a and_o where_o thief_n break_v through_o and_o steal_v but_o lay_v up_o for_o yourselves_o treasure_n in_o heaven_n where_o neither_o moth_n nor_o rust_n do_v corrupt_a and_o where_o thief_n do_v not_o break_v through_o nor_o steal_v for_o where_o your_o treasure_n be_v there_o will_v your_o heart_n be_v also_o and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o such_o as_o be_v earthly-minded_n 5._o i_o come_v now_o to_o show_v the_o great_a evil_n of_o covetousness_n and_o earthly-mindedness_a 1._o it_o be_v a_o sin_n the_o scripture_n testify_v very_o much_o against_o 1._o it_o be_v call_v idolatry_n ephes_n 5.5_o col._n 3.5_o because_o the_o covetous_a man_n love_v tuus_fw-la love_v amor_fw-la tuus_fw-la deus_fw-la tuus_fw-la his_o money_n more_o than_o god_n and_o more_o trust_v in_o it_o 2._o it_o be_v call_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a 1_o tim._n 6.10_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n